Selected quad for the lemma: word_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
word_n body_n bread_n figure_n 9,215 5 9.3127 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A10345 The summe of the conference betwene Iohn Rainoldes and Iohn Hart touching the head and the faith of the Church. Wherein by the way are handled sundrie points, of the sufficiencie and right expounding of the Scriptures, the ministerie of the Church, the function of priesthood, the sacrifice of the masse, with other controuerises of religion: but chiefly and purposely the point of Church-gouernment ... Penned by Iohn Rainoldes, according to the notes set downe in writing by them both: perused by Iohn Hart, and (after things supplied, & altered, as he thought good) allowed for the faithfull report of that which past in conference betwene them. Whereunto is annexed a treatise intitled, Six conclusions touching the Holie Scripture and the Church, writen by Iohn Rainoldes. With a defence of such thinges as Thomas Stapleton and Gregorie Martin haue carped at therein. Rainolds, John, 1549-1607.; Hart, John, d. 1586. aut; Rainolds, John, 1549-1607. Sex theses de Sacra Scriptura, et Ecclesia. English. aut 1584 (1584) STC 20626; ESTC S115546 763,703 768

There are 26 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

your_o priest_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n who_o offer_v up_o this_o sacrifice_n hart._n no_o sir_n nor_o of_o the_o jew_n but_o they_o be_v christian_a priest_n rainoldes_n but_o they_o who_o must_v offer_v the_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o prophet_n malachi_n be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi._n for_o afterward_o 3.3_o entreat_v of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o same_o oblation_n or_o offer_v as_o we_o call_v it_o that_o shall_v be_v offer_v unto_o god_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n he_o say_v that_o the_o lord_n shall_v fine_v the_o son_n of_o levi_n and_o purify_v they_o as_o gold_n and_o silver_n that_o they_o may_v offer_v a_o offering_n unto_o god_n in_o righteousness_n wherefore_o if_o the_o offering_n that_o malachi_n do_v speak_v of_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n that_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n proper_o then_o the_o proper_a priest_n by_o who_o it_o be_v offer_v be_v the_o jewish_a priest_n after_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n even_o the_o son_n of_o levi._n but_o if_o the_o son_n of_o levi_n betoken_v by_o a_o figure_n the_o spiritual_a levit_n that_o be_v all_o the_o faithful_a who_o christ_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v make_v 2.9_o a_o royal_a priesthood_n 1.6_o even_o king_n and_o priest_n to_o god_n his_o father_n as_o your_o 3._o montanus_n well_o expound_v it_o then_o must_v the_o offering_n by_o a_o figure_n signify_v the_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n which_o christian_n of_o all_o sort_n be_v bind_v to_o offer_v unto_o god_n and_o in_o truth_n as_o 11.14_o christ_n say_v of_o john_n baptist_n if_o you_o will_v receive_v it_o this_o be_v elias_n which_o be_v to_o come_v meaning_n that_o 4.5_o the_o prophet_n do_v signify_v john_n baptist_n by_o the_o name_n of_o elias_n so_o i_o may_v say_v to_o you_o touch_v the_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n of_o christian_n if_o you_o will_v receive_v it_o this_o be_v the_o clean_a offering_n which_o shall_v in_o every_o place_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o prophet_n when_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o religious_a worship_n of_o god_n 4.23_o in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n which_o gentile_n convert_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v serve_v he_o in_o through_o all_o the_o world_n be_v wont_a to_o describe_v it_o by_o figurative_a speech_n draw_v from_o the_o external_a and_o carnal_a worship_n of_o god_n in_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n so_o they_o say_v that_o 19.19_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o altar_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n that_o 56.7_o god_n will_v accept_v the_o burn_a offering_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o stranger_n upon_o his_o altar_n that_o ●_o all_o the_o sheeepe_a of_o kedar_n shall_v be_v offefer_v on_o it_o and_o the_o ram_n of_o nebaioth_n that_o 16_o the_o gentile_n shall_v go_v up_o to_o keep_v the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n from_o year_n to_o year_n 17._o unto_o jerusalem_n and_o 21._o every_o pot_n in_o jerusalem_n and_o juda_n shall_v be_v holy_a to_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n and_o all_o they_o who_o sacrifice_n shall_v come_v &_o take_v of_o they_o and_o see_v therein_o final_o that_o 3.4_o the_o offering_n of_o juda_n and_o jerusalem_n shall_v be_v sweet_a unto_o the_o lord_n as_o in_o the_o day_n of_o old_a and_o in_o the_o year_n afore_o wherefore_o as_o the_o prophet_n do_v mention_v a_o offering_n which_o the_o christian_a church_n shall_v offer_v unto_o god_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o do_v they_o mention_v burn_v offering_n and_o sacrifice_n the_o sheep_n of_o kedar_n the_o ram_n of_o nebaioth_n to_o be_v offer_v on_o a_o altar_n they_o mention_v jerusalem_n to_o be_v go_v unto_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n to_o be_v keep_v the_o flesh_n of_o beast_n sacrifice_v to_o be_v sod_a in_o pot_n the_o levite_n to_o be_v the_o minister_n who_o shall_v make_v the_o offering_n in_o righteousness_n to_o god_n but_o neither_o do_v 1●_n the_o priesthood_n of_o the_o levite_n continue_v neither_o be_v 4.21_o jerusalem_n the_o place_n to_o worship_n god_n neither_o be_v 4.10_o the_o jewish_a feast_n the_o time_n to_o do_v it_o nor_o will_v he_o be_v serve_v ●_o with_o sacrifice_n and_o offer_v if_o they_o be_v take_v proper_o the_o prophet_n therefore_o mean_v by_o a_o allegory_n as_o we_o term_v it_o to_o show_v that_o all_o christian_n shall_v as_o priest_n and_o levite_n offer_v up_o themselves_o and_o they_o as_o sacrifice_n at_o all_o time_n as_o solemn_a feast_n in_o all_o place_n as_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o so_o the_o clean_a offering_n whereof_o the_o prophet_n malachi_n say_v it_o shall_v be_v offer_v in_o every_o place_n unto_o the_o lord_n do_v signify_v not_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o be_v make_v upon_o a_o altar_n as_o your_o 1._o council_n will_v have_v it_o but_o the_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n which_o s._n 2.8_o paul_n exhort_v the_o faithful_a to_o offer_v when_o he_o will_v man_n to_o pray_v in_o every_o place_n lift_v up_o pure_a hand_n without_o wrath_n &_o dout_a hart._n the_o prophet_n speak_v much_o in_o deed_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v not_o proper_o and_o simple_o but_o figurative_o by_o obscure_a speech_n and_o allegory_n and_o parable_n that_o must_v be_v understand_v otherwise_o then_o they_o be_v write_v as_o 3._o tertullian_n note_v but_o the_o name_n of_o altar_n be_v use_v proper_o for_o a_o material_a altar_n by_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n say_v 13.10_o we_o have_v a_o altar_n whereof_o they_o have_v not_o power_n to_o eat_v which_o serve_v the_o tabernacle_n for_o he_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n by_o these_o word_n that_o in_o follow_v too_o much_o their_o old_a jewish_a rite_n they_o deprive_v themselves_o of_o a_o other_o manner_n &_o a_o more_o excellent_a sacrifice_n and_o meat_n meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a altar_n and_o christ_n own_o blessed_a body_n offer_v and_o eat_v there_o of_o which_o they_o that_o continue_v in_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o old_a law_n can_v not_o be_v partaker_n this_o altar_n say_v 21._o isychius_n be_v the_o altar_n of_o christ_n body_n which_o the_o jew_n for_o their_o incredulity_n must_v not_o behold_v and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d greek_a word_n as_o also_o the_o 〈◊〉_d hebrew_n answer_v thereunto_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n signify_v proper_o a_o altar_n to_o sacrifice_v on_o and_o not_o a_o metaphorical_a and_o spiritual_a altar_n wherefore_o see_v that_o we_o have_v a_o very_a altar_n in_o the_o proper_a sense_n and_o the_o name_n of_o altar_n do_v import_v a_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v offer_v on_o it_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o altar_n be_v a_o very_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o proper_a sense_n and_o that_o out_o of_o doubt_n be_v the_o clean_a offering_n which_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o according_a as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v define_v rainoldes_n and_o be_v you_o out_o of_o doubt_n that_o by_o the_o word_n we_o have_v a_o altar_n the_o apostle_n mean_v a_o material_a altar_n such_o as_o your_o altar_n 7._o make_v of_o stone_n hart._n what_o else_o a_o very_a altar_n rainoldes_n and_o they_o who_o have_v not_o power_n to_o eat_v of_o this_o altar_n be_v the_o stubborn_a jew_n who_o keep_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n hart._n the_o jew_n and_o such_o profane_a man_n rainoldes_n then_o your_o masseprieste_n may_v and_o do_v use_v to_o ●ate_z of_o this_o altar_n hart._n they_o do_v and_o what_o then_o rainoldes_n their_o tooth_n be_v good_a and_o strong_a if_o they_o eat_v of_o a_o altar_n that_o be_v make_v of_o stone_n be_v you_o sure_a that_o they_o eat_v of_o it_o hart._n eat_v of_o a_o altar_n as_o though_o you_o know_v not_o that_o by_o the_o altar_n the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v upon_o the_o altar_n be_v signify_v they_o eat_v of_o christ_n body_n which_o thereby_o be_v mean_v rainoldes_n be_v it_o so_o then_o the_o word_n altar_n be_v not_o take_v for_o a_o very_a altar_n in_o the_o proper_a sense_n but_o figurative_o for_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o be_v sacrifice_v and_o offer_v neither_o be_v it_o take_v for_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o that_o respect_n that_o christ_n be_v offer_v in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o which_o sort_n he_o be_v 2._o mystical_o offer_v as_o often_o as_o the_o faithful_a do_v eat_v of_o that_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o that_o cup_n wherein_o the_o break_n of_o his_o body_n and_o shed_n of_o his_o blood_n be_v represent_v to_o they_o but_o in_o that_o respect_n that_o christ_n be_v offer_v on_o the_o cross_n in_o the_o which_o sort_n he_o be_v true_o offer_v not_o often_o but_o 9.28_o once_o to_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o many_o and_o ●0_n to_o sanctify_v they_o 14._o for_o ever_o who_o believe_v in_o he_o hart._n nay_o the_o ancient_a father_n isychius_n expound_v it_o
gregory_n mass_n do_v aim_v at_o that_o which_o be_v not_o so_o for_o the_o principal_a point_n thereof_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n even_o the_o sovereign_a sacrifice_n that_o be_v our_o saviour_n christ_n offer_v to_o god_n his_o father_n and_o since_o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o canon_n speak_v of_o and_o s._n gregory_n offer_v and_o the_o mass_n import_v with_o we_o who_o you_o call_v masspriest_n it_o follow_v that_o s._n gregory_n celebrate_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n as_o we_o do_v and_o therefore_o be_v a_o mass-priest_n not_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o communion_n rainoldes_n then_o the_o man_n &_o woman_n of_o rome_n be_v masseprieste_n too_o in_o s._n gregory_n time_n and_o celebrate_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n as_o you_o do_v for_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o he_o offer_v and_o the_o canon_n speak_v of_o be_v illibata_fw-la the_o bread_n and_o wine_n offer_v by_o the_o man_n and_o woman_n for_o the_o communion_n and_o omnibus_fw-la the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n which_o they_o do_v offer_v all_o to_o god_n hart._n nay_o it_o be_v the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n rainoldes_n the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n be_v plain_a to_o the_o contrary_n for_o it_o desire_v god_n christi_fw-la to_o accept_v and_o bless_v their_o offering_n that_o it_o may_v be_v make_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o th●m_v it_o be_v not_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n therefore_o but_o very_a bread_n and_o wine_n which_o the_o faithful_a people_n offer_v to_o be_v sanctify_v to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o communion_n hart._n it_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n before_o consecration_n as_o it_o be_v declare_v by_o those_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n but_o after_o consecration_n the_o canon_n say_v of_o it_o hostiam_fw-la puram_fw-la hostiam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la hostiam_fw-la immaculatam_fw-la that_o be_v the_o pure_a holy_a and_o undefiled_a host_n rainoldes_n but_o upon_o those_o word_n it_o follow_v in_o the_o canon_n perp●tuae_fw-la the_o holy_a bread_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o the_o cup_n of_o salvation_n wherefore_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o cup_n that_o be_v the_o wine_n though_o holy_a now_o and_o sanctify_v to_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n and_o cup_n of_o salvation_n that_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o a_o mystery_n but_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v the_o pure_a holy_a and_o undefiled_a sacrifice_n or_o host_n as_o you_o term_v it_o not_o only_o before_o but_o after_o consecration_n too_o hart._n nay_o the_o real_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v mean_v by_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o cup_n in_o a_o figurative_a speech_n and_o so_o christ_n himself_o be_v the_o pure_a holy_a and_o undefiled_a host_n rainoldes_n where_o a_o figurative_a speech_n be_v use_v in_o 20._o scripture_n you_o will_v none_o of_o it_o here_o where_o your_o canon_n use_v none_o you_o fancy_n it_o for_o it_o follow_v straight_o touch_v that_o bread_n and_o that_o cup_n abel_n upon_o the_o which_o thing_n vouchsafe_v o_o lord_n to_o look_v down_o with_o a_o merciful_a &_o cheerful_a countenance_n and_o to_o accept_v they_o as_o thou_o do_v vouchsafe_v to_o accept_v the_o offering_n of_o thy_o righteous_a servant_n abel_n so_o that_o if_o christ_n himself_o be_v mean_v real_o by_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o cup_n in_o a_o figurative_a speech_n then_o the_o priest_n desire_v god_n to_o look_v on_o christ_n with_o a_o merciful_a and_o cheerful_a countenance_n and_o to_o accept_v of_o he_o at_o the_o priest_n request_n as_o he_o do_v accept_v 11.4_o the_o gift_n which_o abel_n offer_v there_o have_v be_v heretofore_o a_o say_n among_o you_o which_o i_o hope_v you_o like_v not_o that_o svi_fw-la a_o priest_n be_v the_o creator_n of_o his_o creator_n but_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o priest_n be_v lift_v high_a to_o be_v the_o mediator_n of_o his_o mediator_n and_o so_o will_v you_o vouch_v in_o earnest_n of_o masspriest_n that_o which_o apologer_n tertullian_n do_v jest_n at_o in_o the_o heathen_n debebit_fw-la man_n must_v be_v merciful_a unto_o god_n now_o unless_o it_o please_v the_o priest_n christ_n shall_v not_o find_v favour_n in_o his_o father_n sight_n hart._n the_o prayer_n of_o the_o priest_n that_o god_n will_v look_v upon_o his_o offering_n and_o accept_v they_o have_v a_o very_a good_a meaning_n whereof_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o the_o former_a word_n touch_v the_o host_n must_v needs_o betoken_v christ._n for_o how_o can_v the_o name_n of_o a_o pure_a holy_a and_o undefiled_a host_n be_v give_v to_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n rainoldes_n how_o be_v they_o call_v illibata_fw-la pure_a or_o undefiled_a gift_n offering_n and_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o canon_n itself_o before_o consecration_n hart._n they_o may_v be_v call_v pure_a by_o acceptation_n there_o as_o yourself_o expound_v which_o the_o canon_n seem_v to_o import_v also_o in_o that_o it_o pray_v god_n bene●icas_fw-la to_o accept_v they_o and_o bless_v they_o rainoldes_n even_o so_o they_o may_v be_v call_v here_o a_o pure_a holy_a and_o undefiled_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o canon_n also_o likewise_o pray_v god_n to_o accept_v they_o in_o express_a term_n and_o in_o effect_n replea●●●r_fw-la to_o bless_v they_o whereof_o it_o have_v a_o far_a and_o plain_a proof_n too_o in_o that_o it_o say_v they_o offer_v to_o god_n that_o pure_a sacrifice_n the_o bread_n of_o life_n and_o cup_n of_o salvation_n datis_fw-la of_o his_o gift_n for_o in_o say_v that_o they_o offer_v it_o of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n it_o show_v that_o the_o very_a bread_n and_o wine_n be_v mean_v which_o the_o people_n be_v use_v then_o to_o offer_v as_o now_o we_o offer_v money_n the_o rest_n there_o of_o be_v give_v after_o to_o the_o poor_a a_o part_n be_v take_v first_o for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o communicant_n that_o they_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n and_o cup_n of_o salvation_n that_o be_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n hart._n i_o know_v that_o the_o name_n of_o sacrifice_n be_v give_v to_o the_o people_n offering_n and_o other_o thing_n often_o but_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o by_o the_o pure_a holy_a and_o undefiled_a sacrifice_n s._n gregory_n mean_v christ_n and_o so_o do_v offer_v he_o up_o to_o god_n his_o father_n in_o the_o mass_n as_o we_o do_v which_o i_o think_v the_o rather_o because_o they_o be_v masspriest_n as_o our_o apology_n show_v who_o live_v in_o the_o function_n of_o priesthood_n before_o he_o for_o the_o holy_a 14._o council_n of_o nice_n know_v none_o but_o such_o offerer_n or_o sacrifice_v that_o be_v massingpriest_n s._n 5._o cyprian_n acknowledge_v the_o priest_n of_o his_o time_n to_o have_v offer_v or_o sacrifice_v yea_o even_o in_o prison_n he_o be_v a_o mass-priest_n that_o s._n 8._o austin_n send_v to_o do_v sacrifice_n in_o a_o house_n infest_a with_o evil_a spirit_n they_o be_v masspriest_n of_o who_o 45._o eusebius_n write_v that_o they_o pacify_v the_o divine_a majesty_n with_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n and_o mystical_a consecration_n the_o dignity_n of_o priesthood_n set_v forth_o in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o same_o title_n by_o s._n sacerdotio_fw-la chrysostome_n be_v special_o commend_v there_o for_o the_o power_n of_o do_v the_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n upon_o the_o altar_n to_o be_v short_a he_o and_o all_o the_o other_o father_n both_o greek_a and_o latin_a be_v masspriest_n none_o be_v ever_o make_v but_o for_o that_o purpose_n principal_o s._n 4._o ambrose_n testify_v that_o to_o take_v the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n which_o he_o call_v with_o the_o apostle_n imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v to_o receive_v authority_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n in_o our_o lord_n steed_n rainoldes_n these_o testimony_n m._n hart_n of_o greek_a and_o latin_a father_n with_o the_o rest_n quote_v by_o your_o apologie-writer_n either_o at_o douai_n douai_n or_o at_o 10.11_o rheims_n do_v some_o of_o they_o mention_v offer_v and_o not_o sacrifice_v some_o speak_v of_o sacrifice_v but_o not_o the_o sacrifice_a of_o christ._n between_o the_o which_o point_v what_o difference_n there_o be_v for_o the_o one_o 16._o himself_o be_v a_o sufficient_a witness_n in_o that_o he_o declare_v that_o sundry_a thing_n be_v offer_v which_o be_v not_o sacrifice_v for_o the_o other_o they_o who_o show_v that_o the_o faithful_a do_v offer_v sundry_a sacrifice_n as_o namely_o of_o eleem_v alm_n of_o 20._o praise_n of_o ●●_o themselves_o even_o at_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n but_o admit_v they_o mean_v by_o offering_n and_o sacrifice_v the_o sacrifice_a of_o christ_n as_o some_o of_o they_o do_v yet_o nether_a be_v their_o sacrifice_a that_o which_o your_o massing_n be_v nor_o they_o who_o sacrifice_v masspriest_n for_o you_o will_v have_v 1._o the_o sacrifice_n offer_v in_o the_o mass_n to_o be_v a_o sacrificium_fw-la very_a sovereign_a
body_n and_o he_o alone_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o head_n unto_o it_o by_o give_v it_o power_n of_o life_n of_o feel_v of_o move_v and_o 2d_o he_o have_v god_n appoint_v to_o be_v the_o head_n to_o the_o church_n and_o 2.19_o by_o he_o all_o the_o body_n furnish_v and_o knit_v together_o by_o jointe_n and_o band_n increase_v with_o the_o increase_n of_o god_n hart._n we_o grant_v that_o christ_n be_v proper_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o principal_a and_o quicken_a head_n but_o this_o head_n be_v imperial_a so_o to_o term_v he_o and_o invisible_a the_o pope_n be_v a_o visible_a and_o ministerial_a head_n yet_o in_o truth_n a_o head_n also_o 16._o for_o of_o the_o head_n there_o be_v two_o duty_n the_o one_o to_o be_v the_o fountain_n out_o of_o the_o which_o there_o flow_v life_n into_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n the_o other_o to_o direct_v imperio_fw-la by_o his_o rule_n and_o power_n the_o outward_a function_n of_o the_o body_n the_o former_a duty_n do_v agree_v to_o god_n alone_o and_o christ._n the_o late_a to_o the_o service_n and_o ministry_n of_o man_n too_o rainoldes_n this_o your_o answer_n of_o two_o head_n do_v stand_v with_o more_o reason_n than_o obedient_a he_o who_o say_v that_o christ_n and_o christ_n vicar_n peter_n and_o peter_n successor_n the_o pope_n be_v all_o but_o one_o head_n of_o the_o church_n howbeit_o so_o to_o make_v a_o twofold_a head_n as_o you_o do_v by_o the_o variety_n of_o two_o duty_n it_o be_v not_o to_o divide_v but_o to_o rend_v a_o sunder_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o head_n and_o to_o make_v the_o pope_n a_o head_n imperial_a rather_o then_o a_o ministerial_a for_o by_o rule_n and_o power_n to_o direct_v either_o the_o inward_a or_o outward_a function_n of_o the_o body_n be_v the_o chief_a and_o proper_a function_n of_o the_o head_n agree_v to_o that_o head_n alone_o that_o give_v power_n of_o life_n and_o feel_v and_o move_v to_o the_o body_n wherefore_o since_o christ_n have_v bind_v himself_o by_o his_o promise_n 28.20_o to_o be_v with_o we_o until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n do_v give_v this_o power_n unto_o his_o church_n by_o the_o effectual_a work_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n which_o do_v quicken_v both_o the_o whole_a and_o every_o member_n of_o his_o body_n they_o who_o do_v divide_v the_o preeminence_n of_o this_o duty_n between_o he_o and_o the_o pope_n allot_v to_o he_o the_o inward_a to_o the_o pope_n the_o outward_a function_n to_o be_v direct_v deserve_v to_o be_v attaint_v of_o treason_n against_o the_o lord_n for_o see_v that_o to_o exercise_v this_o rule_n and_o dominion_n be_v a_o prerogative_n royal_a and_o proper_a to_o the_o king_n of_o king_n to_o give_v it_o either_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n to_o any_o subject_n can_v not_o be_v a_o lesser_a offence_n then_o high_a treason_n hart._n if_o you_o account_v this_o to_o be_v treason_n against_o the_o lord_n and_o do_v attaint_v we_o of_o it_o you_o must_v attaint_v himself_o of_o it_o who_o by_o his_o word_n have_v bring_v we_o to_o it_o for_o s._n paul_n compare_v the_o church_n unto_o a_o body_n to_o show_v the_o sundry_a gift_n of_o christian_n and_o in_o their_o sundry_a gift_n their_o several_a duty_n by_o the_o similitude_n of_o member_n do_v mention_v a_o head_n among_o they_o 12.21_o the_o e●e_n can_v say_v unto_o the_o hand_n i_o have_v no_o need_n of_o thou_o nor_o the_o head_n to_o the_o foot_n i_o have_v no_o need_n of_o you_o here_o the_o name_n of_o head_n must_v by_o all_o likelihood_n be_v mean_v of_o the_o pastor_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o flock_n but_o it_o can_v be_v mean_v of_o christ._n for_o he_o may_v say_v to_o we_o i_o have_v no_o need_n of_o you_o and_o so_o he_o will_v we_o also_o 17.10_o when_o we_o shall_v have_v do_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v command_v we_o to_o say_v we_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n it_o must_v be_v mean_v therefore_o of_o peter_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o by_o consequent_a of_o the_o pope_n in_o respect_n of_o all_o bishop_n rainoldes_n if_o paul_n have_v so_o mean_v it_o either_o of_o peter_n or_o of_o the_o pope_n he_o have_v a_o tongue_n of_o the_o learned_a he_o can_v easy_o have_v so_o expound_v it_o but_o in_o the_o apply_v of_o his_o similitude_n to_o his_o purpose_n he_o show_v that_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o name_n of_o head_n they_o who_o have_v the_o great_a grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n by_o foot_n hand_n and_o eye_n they_o who_o not_o so_o great_a though_o great_a some_o than_o other_o hart._n they_o who_o have_v the_o great_a nay_o the_o name_n of_o head_n do_v show_v it_o must_v be_v one_o and_o that_o one_o visible_a head_n which_o we_o call_v a_o ministerial_a head_n under_o christ_n proportionable_a to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n i_o mean_v the_o church_n of_o the_o which_o visible_a and_o ministerial_a head_n those_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n may_v be_v true_o verify_v the_o head_n can_v say_v to_o the_o foot_n i_o have_v no_o need_n of_o you_o rainoldes_n indeed_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o head_n those_o word_n will_v fit_v he_o well_o for_o 1._o cardinal_n poole_n discourse_v on_o the_o same_o reason_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n do_v make_v as_o he_o the_o head_n so_o king_n to_o be_v the_o foot_n and_o it_o be_v true_a the_o pope_n can_v not_o say_v to_o king_n i_o have_v no_o need_n of_o you_o it_o will_v be_v hard_o go_v for_o he_o if_o they_o be_v not_o but_o if_o because_o saint_n paul_n do_v in_o that_o similitude_n mention_v a_o head_n therefore_o there_o must_v be_v one_o visible_a head_n proportionable_a to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v the_o church_n then_o because_o s._n paul_n do_v mention_v the_o foot_n there_o must_v be_v needs_o also_o two_o visible_a foot_n by_o the_o like_a proportion_n now_o i_o will_v glad_o know_v of_o you_o master_n hart_n which_o you_o will_v make_v the_o two_o foot_n of_o your_o church_n the_o emperor_n i_o trow_v must_v be_v the_o right_a foot_n the_o left_a who_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n what_o shall_v the_o french_a king_n do_v then_o it_o be_v well_o that_o the_o king_n of_o scot_n be_v no_o member_n of_o it_o nor_o the_o king_n of_o denmark_n marry_o we_o have_v news_n of_o the_o king_n of_o swethland_n that_o jesuit_n have_v convert_v he_o shall_v he_o be_v the_o left_a foot_n or_o shall_v the_o king_n of_o poleland_n set_v in_o a_o foot_n for_o it_o or_o be_v the_o king_n of_o boheme_n near_a it_o there_o be_v a_o king_n of_o bungo_n too_o 4._o who_o be_v report_v to_o protect_v your_o religion_n in_o his_o country_n and_o england_n likewise_o the_o great_a turk_n &_o other_o prince_n of_o mahomet_n sect_n they_o may_v be_v foot_n in_o time_n also_o but_o how_o many_o foot_n may_v this_o body_n have_v may_v it_o have_v six_o seven_o eight_o may_v it_o have_v twenty_o visible_a foot_n and_o may_v it_o not_o have_v ten_o not_o four_o not_o two_o may_v it_o have_v but_o one_o visible_a head_n hart._n cardinal_n pole_n compare_v king_n unto_o foot_n not_o as_o though_o they_o be_v the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o church_n for_o he_o count_v they_o as_o special_a member_n though_o not_o head_n but_o because_o the_o church_n in_o the_o course_n of_o her_o growth_n be_v last_o of_o all_o increase_v with_o they_o as_o with_o foot_n and_o so_o do_v make_v a_o end_n of_o grow_v rainoldes_n then_o in_o saint_n paul_n time_n the_o church_n have_v no_o foot_n but_o a_o head_n without_o they_o and_o what_o do_v he_o mean_v to_o say_v that_o the_o head_n can_v not_o speak_v to_o the_o foot_n when_o it_o have_v no_o foot_n to_o speak_v too_o hart._n yes_o it_o have_v foot_n then_o but_o of_o a_o other_o sort_n for_o they_o who_o be_v of_o low_a degree_n and_o mean_a gift_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v resemble_v to_o foot_n in_o comparison_n of_o other_o who_o be_v in_o those_o respect_n as_o hand_n and_o eye_n above_o they_o rainoldes_n and_o do_v you_o think_v the_o church_n have_v but_o two_o such_o foot_n or_o have_v it_o many_o hundred_o for_o christian_n be_v grow_v 4.4_o long_o before_o to_o thousand_o and_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a the_o most_o of_o they_o be_v eye_n and_o hand_n hart._n it_o have_v no_o doubt_n many_o but_o you_o must_v not_o rack_n the_o member_n of_o similitude_n beyond_o the_o principal_a point_n whereto_o they_o be_v apply_v and_o mean_v for_o else_o you_o may_v infer_v too_o that_o the_o church_n must_v have_v but_o two_o eye_n and_o two_o hand_n because_o a_o man_n body_n to_o which_o s._n paul_n resemble_v the_o church_n have_v no_o more_o rainoldes_n as_o you_o say_v yet_o
this_o be_v the_o mould_n of_o your_o own_o reason_n wherein_o you_o cast_v the_o church_n to_o have_v one_o visible_a head_n proportionable_a to_o the_o body_n a_o fancy_n more_o proportionable_a to_o the_o limb_n of_o popery_n then_o to_o saint_n paul_n doctrine_n touch_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n for_o his_o drift_n and_o purpose_n therein_o be_v to_o show_v that_o 20._o as_o a_o man_n body_n be_v make_v of_o sundry_a member_n 25._o which_o be_v not_o all_o as_o excellent_a one_o as_o a_o other_o the_o hand_n as_o the_o head_n the_o foot_n as_o the_o hand_n yet_o they_o be_v join_v together_o to_o care_v one_o for_o a_o other_o all_o to_o maintain_v the_o body_n 28._o so_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n consist_v of_o sundry_a christian_n as_o member_n some_o of_o great_a gift_n and_o calling_n than_o some_o the_o apostle_n than_o that_o teacher_n the_o teacher_n than_o the_o helper_n chapter_n yet_o all_o join_v together_o to_o love_n and_o serve_v one_o a_o other_o and_o keep_v the_o church_n in_o unity_n whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a first_o that_o in_o name_v 21._o the_o head_n he_o consider_v it_o not_o as_o a_o head_n proper_o but_o only_o as_o a_o principal_a member_n for_o so_o he_o apply_v it_o name_v all_o christian_n 27._o member_n and_o call_v they_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n he_o put_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o head_n next_o that_o by_o the_o name_n of_o head_n so_o consider_v he_o mean_v no_o one_o man_n but_o all_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n as_o they_o who_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o chief_a gift_n and_o place_v in_o the_o high_a function_n uuherefore_o if_o that_o word_n be_v strain_v to_o the_o uttermost_a as_o far_o as_o by_o the_o text_n it_o may_v the_o proof_n that_o it_o yield_v will_v argue_v a_o preeminence_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o general_a over_o the_o inferior_a member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o no_o power_n of_o peter_n over_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n much_o less_o of_o the_o pope_n over_o his_o fellow-bishop_n hart._n yet_o this_o it_o do_v prove_v that_o the_o name_n of_o head_n be_v not_o so_o give_v unto_o christ_n but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v give_v unto_o a_o mortal_a man_n also_o not_o as_o a_o head_n proper_o you_o say_v but_o as_o a_o principal_a member_n and_o what_o say_v i_o else_o for_o i_o grant_v that_o christ_n be_v proper_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o pope_n improper_o yet_o you_o reprove_v i_o for_o it_o rainoldes_n i_o reprove_v you_o not_o because_o you_o give_v the_o title_n of_o head_n unto_o the_o pope_n for_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o pastor_n for_o their_o gift_n above_o the_o member_n of_o their_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v like_o head_n though_o many_o of_o they_o be_v tail_n 1●_n as_o the_o prophet_n call_v they_o but_o because_o you_o name_v he_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o that_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o it_o be_v due_a to_o none_o but_o christ._n for_o though_o you_o grant_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o quicken_a head_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o fountain_n whence_o there_o flow_v life_n into_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n yet_o you_o give_v the_o pope_n this_o soveraintie_n of_o headship_n that_o he_o shall_v direct_v 〈◊〉_d by_o his_o rule_n and_o power_n the_o outward_a function_n of_o the_o body_n wherein_o as_o of_o the_o one_o side_n you_o debase_v the_o worthiness_n of_o his_o gift_n who_o give_v we_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n in_o that_o you_o do_v appoint_v they_o to_o guide_v only_o the_o outward_a function_n of_o his_o body_n whereas_o 4.12_o he_o have_v give_v they_o 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o full_a perfit_v of_o his_o saint_n so_o of_o the_o other_o side_n you_o detract_v somewhat_o from_o the_o soveraintie_n of_o christ_n when_o you_o give_v his_o servant_n dominion_n to_o guide_v his_o church_n by_o rule_n and_o power_n whereas_o they_o be_v ordain_v 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n wherefore_o howsoever_o you_o allay_v the_o title_n which_o you_o give_v the_o pope_n and_o say_v you_o call_v he_o head_n not_o proper_o but_o improper_o a_o ministerial_a head_n yet_o you_o do_v imply_v that_o in_o this_o improper_o which_o can_v agree_v to_o none_o but_o he_o that_o proper_o be_v a_o head_n a_o head_n that_o do_v quicken_v guide_n and_o move_v the_o body_n even_o as_o in_o 19_o your_o canon_n law_n it_o be_v say_v of_o peter_n the_o lord_n do_v commit_v the_o charge_n of_o preach_v the_o truth_n unto_o he_o principal_o 18._o to_o the_o intent_n that_o from_o he_o as_o it_o be_v from_o a_o certain_a head_n he_o may_v pour_v abroad_o his_o gift_n as_o it_o be_v into_o all_o the_o body_n hart._n these_o word_n that_o you_o reprove_v in_o the_o canon_n law_n be_v the_o word_n of_o a_o man_n of_o singular_a wit_n and_o judgement_n famous_a both_o for_o holiness_n and_o learning_n 87._o saint_n leo_n a_o ancient_a father_n who_o do_v flourish_v 440._o above_o a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o rainoldes_n they_o a●e_v the_o word_n i_o grant_v of_o a_o ancient_a a_o witty_a a_o learned_a holy_a man_n but_o a_o man_n and_o that_o be_v more_o a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n now_o man_n even_o the_o holy_a 18._o while_o they_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n have_v some_o contagion_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o learning_n may_v puff_n up_o 8.1_o as_o it_o do_v the_o corinthian_n and_o the_o best_a wit_n be_v soon_o taint_v with_o ambition_n yea_o 20.22_o james_n and_o john_n 3.17_o the_o son_n of_o thunder_n desire_a superiority_n and_o rome_n a_o great_a city_n do_v nourish_v great_a stateliness_n and_o that_o 27._o even_o in_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o city_n 370._o before_o leo._n so_o they_o love_a preeminence_n as_o 9_o diotrephes_n do_v take_v all_o occasion_n to_o get_v it_o and_o seek_v some_o colour_n to_o maintain_v it_o wherefore_o as_o one_o in_o hortens_fw-mi tully_n say_v to_o hortensius_n when_o he_o immoderate_o praise_a eloquence_n that_o he_o will_v have_v lift_v she_o up_o into_o heaven_n that_o himself_o may_v have_v go_v up_o with_o she_o as_o have_v great_a right_n unto_o she_o so_o many_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o leo_n not_o the_o least_o of_o they_o do_v lift_v up_o saint_n peter_n with_o praise_n to_o the_o sky_n that_o themselves_o may_v rise_v up_o with_o he_o as_o being_z forsooth_o his_o suae_fw-la heir_n the_o epistle_n and_o sermon_n of_o leo_n have_v manifest_a mark_n of_o this_o affection_n as_o to_o give_v a_o taste_n of_o they_o 87._o the_o lord_n do_v take_v peter_n into_o the_o feloship_n of_o the_o indivisible_a unity_n and_o 61._o we_o acknowledge_v the_o most_o singular_a care_n of_o the_o most_o bless_a peter_n for_o we_o all_o in_o this_o that_o god_n have_v loose_v the_o deceit_n of_o all_o slanderer_n and_o 50._o my_o writing_n be_v strengthen_v by_o the_o merit_n and_o authority_n of_o my_o lord_n most_o bless_a peter_n the_o apostle_n and_o 62._o peter_n have_v confirm_v the_o judgement_n of_o his_o see_v in_o decision_n of_o faith_n have_v not_o suffer_v any_o thing_n amiss_o to_o be_v see_v about_o any_o of_o your_o person_n who_o have_v labour_v with_o we_o for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o 87._o we_o beseech_v you_o and_o advise_v you_o to_o keep_v the_o thing_n decree_v of_o we_o through_o the_o inspiration_n of_o god_n &_o the_o apostle_n most_o bless_a peter_n &_o suae_fw-la if_o any_o thing_n be_v well_o do_v or_o decree_v of_o we_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v obtain_v of_o god_n mercy_n by_o daily_a prayer_n it_o be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o s._n peter_n work_n and_o merit_n who_o power_n do_v live_v and_o authority_n excel_v in_o his_o own_o see_v and_o suae_fw-la he_o be_v so_o plentiful_o water_v of_o the_o fountain_n of_o all_o grace_n that_o whereas_o he_o receive_v many_o thing_n alone_o yet_o nothing_o pass_v over_o to_o any_o man_n but_o by_o he_o to_o be_v short_a leo_n &_o by_o his_o example_n his_o successor_n after_o he_o be_v so_o full_a of_o such_o speech_n that_o in_o the_o common_a phrase_n of_o themselves_o and_o their_o secretary_n all_o thing_n pertain_v to_o the_o pope_n be_v grow_v to_o be_v s._n peter_n their_o prerogative_n 45._o s._n peter_n right_a their_o dignity_n ibid._n saint_n peter_n honour_n their_o stateliness_n suae_fw-la s._n peter_n reverence_n subjection_n to_o they_o 87._o subjection_n to_o s._n peter_n a_o message_n from_o they_o 24._o a_o embassage_n from_o s._n peter_n thing_n do_v in_o their_o presence_n 4._o do_v in_o s._n peter_n presence_n land_n and_o possession_n give_v they_o sept_fw-fr give_v to_o s._n peter_n and_o when_o they_o will_v have_v kingdom_n 81._o prince_n must_v get_v they_o for_o s._n peter_n their_o territory_n and_o lordship_n sintlegitimi_fw-la s._n
peter_n not_o only_o my_o lord_n but_o as_o 20.28_o thomas_n do_v our_o saviour_n my_o lord_n &_o my_o god_n it_o be_v a_o desperate_a cause_n that_o will_v admit_v no_o colour_n the_o nichols_n stew_n of_o rome_n have_v find_v patroness_n and_o bene●ent_n that_o which_o be_v worse_o than_o stew_n the_o domitian_n heathen_n call_v domitian_n our_o lord_n god_n the_o emperor_n a_o 22._o canoniste_n say_v of_o the_o pope_n our_o lord_n god_n the_o pope_n blasphemous_a speech_n both_o yet_o a_o quareller_n may_v allege_v in_o defence_n of_o they_o 82.6_o i_o have_v say_v you_o be_v go_n but_o the_o very_a domit._n heathen_n by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n mislike_v the_o one_o as_o insolent_a neither_o have_v i_o read_v any_o papiste_n no_o nor_o jesuite_n that_o dare_v defend_v the_o other_o it_o be_v a_o common_a practice_n among_o the_o young_a student_n of_o our_o university_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o dunce_n and_o be_v yet_o among_o too_o many_o who_o spot_v of_o dunsery_n have_v stain_v that_o if_o in_o disputation_n they_o be_v bring_v to_o a_o inconvenience_n be_v it_o never_o so_o absurd_a they_o will_v have_v a_o distinction_n though_o void_a of_o brain_n and_o sense_n yet_o a_o distinction_n to_o maintain_v it_o if_o a_o man_n will_v be_v perverse_a it_o be_v no_o mastery_n to_o do_v it_o but_o as_o corrupt_v a_o wise_a and_o learned_a man_n do_v say_v of_o they_o that_o they_o be_v base_a wit_n which_o be_v so_o affect_v whereas_o ingenuous_a mind_n &_o nature_n well_o give_v will_v rather_o seek_v how_o true_a that_o be_v which_o they_o hold_v then_o how_o they_o may_v defend_v it_o make_v great_a price_n of_o verity_n than_o victory_n so_o i_o may_v say_v yea_o much_o more_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n of_o faith_n of_o life_n eternal_a a_o christian_a wit_n and_o godly_a mind_n will_v search_v and_o weigh_v rather_o what_o shall_v be_v say_v true_o then_o what_o may_v be_v say_v probable_o or_o colourable_o at_o the_o least_o and_o i_o wish_v if_o it_o have_v be_v the_o good_a will_n of_o god_n master_n campian_n have_v have_v the_o grace_n in_o the_o tower-conference_n to_o have_v aim_v at_o this_o mark_n rather_o in_o sincerity_n to_o have_v seek_v the_o truth_n then_o with_o shift_n and_o caville_n the_o maintenance_n of_o his_o cause_n and_o credit_n but_o though_o he_o be_v froward_a and_o do_v shut_v his_o eye_n against_o the_o beam_n of_o the_o light_n yet_o do_v you_o not_o so_o for_o god_n sake_n master_n hart_n in_o this_o conference_n of_o we_o be_v content_a to_o open_v your_o mind_n to_o his_o grace_n who_o 2d_o stand_v at_o the_o door_n &_o knock_v and_o hearken_v to_o 3.13_o his_o voice_n while_o it_o be_v to_o day_n beware_v of_o their_o example_n who_o 5.44_o can_v not_o believe_v or_o if_o they_o do_v believe_v ●3_n dare_v not_o confess_v christ_n because_o they_o love_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n more_o than_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n and_o hunt_v after_o honour_n one_o of_o another_o not_o seek_v for_o that_o honour_n which_o come_v from_o the_o lord_n alone_o deny_v yourself_o and_o your_o friend_n and_o all_o fleshly_a respect_n &_o geve_v the_o glory_n to_o the_o high_a hart._n i_o neither_o seek_v for_o shift_n to_o darken_v the_o truth_n nor_o love_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n more_o than_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n it_o be_v a_o madness_n for_o a_o man_n to_o adventure_v his_o life_n as_o we_o do_v you_o see_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o error_n or_o of_o his_o own_o credit_n as_o for_o m._n campian_n i_o think_v of_o he_o as_o of_o myself_o i_o hear_v the_o disputation_n wherein_o he_o answer_v they_o who_o come_v to_o reason_n with_o he_o and_o i_o perceyve_v nothing_o in_o any_o of_o his_o answer_n but_o sincerity_n and_o truth_n rainoldes_n myself_o be_v not_o present_a at_o the_o disputation_n but_o i_o have_v read_v they_o action_n write_v and_o that_o lest_o you_o suspect_v the_o writer_n as_o partial_a by_o a_o favourer_n of_o you_o who_o be_v present_a as_o he_o say_v at_o the_o whole_a action_n and_o i_o do_v affirm_v it_o in_o singleness_n of_o heart_n as_o before_o the_o lord_n neither_o do_v i_o doubt_v but_o all_o who_o have_v the_o wisdom_n to_o discern_v spirit_n will_v see_v the_o same_o if_o they_o peruse_v they_o he_o seek_v in_o such_o sort_n to_o maintain_v the_o credit_n of_o his_o cause_n or_o person_n as_o though_o he_o have_v set_v nothing_o more_o before_o his_o eye_n then_o to_o persuade_v his_o 1●_n proselyte_n that_o nothing_o can_v be_v bring_v against_o he_o but_o he_o will_v show_v it_o make_v for_o he_o i_o will_v not_o say_v so_o much_o unless_o i_o know_v it_o by_o his_o fruit_n for_o to_o pass_v over_o his_o often_o gloss_v against_o the_o text_n and_o face_v out_o of_o place_n which_o press_v he_o most_o forcible_o thing_n allege_v out_o of_o the_o quint._n counsel_n of_o the_o imperf_n father_n of_o canonicis_fw-la other_o which_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o your_o last_o own_o doctor_n have_v that_o sense_n wherein_o we_o cyte_v they_o he_o by_o shift_n and_o caville_n will_v turn_v their_o neck_n clean_o about_o and_o wreste_v they_o unto_o his_o side_n which_o argue_v more_o wit_n than_o truth_n and_o sophistry_n than_o sincerity_n but_o to_o leave_v he_o to_o the_o lord_n judgement_n and_o come_v unto_o yourself_o you_o neither_o seek_v for_o shift_n you_o say_v to_o darken_v the_o truth_n nor_o love_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n more_o than_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n i_o pray_v god_n your_o deed_n be_v not_o as_o plain_a to_o prove_v you_o do_v it_o as_o the_o reason_n which_o you_o add_v to_o prove_v you_o do_v it_o not_o be_v weak_a for_o what_o although_o it_o be_v a_o madness_n to_o do_v it_o many_o thing_n be_v do_v which_o mad_a man_n scarce_o will_v do_v and_o yet_o they_o that_o do_v they_o do_v think_v themselves_o well_o in_o their_o wit_n as_o com._n the_o donatist_n do_v who_o adventure_v their_o life_n in_o most_o desperate_a manner_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o their_o error_n and_o maintenance_n of_o their_o credit_n yea_o they_o offer_v themselves_o to_o the_o sword_n the_o fire_n the_o water_n seek_v for_o death_n as_o for_o a_o treasure_n that_o they_o may_v die_v they_o think_v martyr_n but_o whether_o you_o do_v set_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n at_o that_o price_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o your_o own_o conscience_n that_o you_o seek_v for_o shift_n the_o thing_n itself_o do_v cry_v for_o your_o very_a answer_n in_o the_o defence_n of_o leo_n touch_v unity_n of_o will_n not_o unity_n of_o substance_n on_o these_o word_n of_o he_o that_o 87._o christ_n receive_v peter_n into_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o indivisible_a unity_n be_v a_o shift_n to_o shield_v he_o from_o a_o just_a reproof_n let_v his_o own_o discourse_n speak_v and_o it_o will_v grant_v it_o for_o have_v say_v before_o that_o christ_n do_v place_n peter_n as_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a head_n to_o pour_v his_o gift_n from_o he_o as_o it_o be_v into_o all_o the_o body_n to_o this_o point_n he_o knit_v nominari_fw-la these_o word_n by_o way_n of_o proof_n so_o that_o if_o the_o proof_n have_v any_o kin_n with_o the_o thing_n prove_v the_o word_n must_v needs_o import_v some_o preeminence_n in_o peter_n above_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ._n but_o unity_n of_o will_n wherein_o 11._o christ_n do_v pray_v that_o his_o disciple_n may_v be_v one_o as_o he_o be_v one_o with_o his_o father_n be_v common_a unto_o all_o not_o peculiar_a to_o peter_n 21._o as_o christ_n himself_o do_v show_v that_o plaster_n then_o of_o you_o have_v no_o virtue_n in_o it_o to_o salve_v the_o sore_a of_o leo._n neither_o can_v you_o cure_v it_o indeed_o with_o any_o other_o for_o the_o unity_n which_o the_o scripture_n do_v note_n in_o god_n and_o we_o be_v of_o three_o sort_n the_o first_o of_o person_n in_o one_o nature_n the_o second_o of_o nature_n in_o one_o person_n the_o three_o of_o sundry_a nature_n and_o person_n in_o one_o quality_n in_o the_o first_o be_v 6.4_o one_o god_n in_o the_o second_o be_v 8.6_o one_o christ_n in_o the_o three_o be_v 6.8_o one_o church_n the_o lord_n receive_v not_o peter_n into_o the_o first_o unity_n wherein_o the_o father_n the_o son_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v one_o god_n not_o into_o the_o second_o wherein_o he_o himself_o consist_v of_o two_o nature_n god_n and_o man_n be_v one_o christ._n into_o the_o three_o wherein_o the_o church_n be_v one_o with_o christ_n her_o head_n and_o the_o church_n member_n be_v one_o among_o themselves_o he_o do_v receive_v peter_n but_o in_o society_n with_o his_o brethren_n not_o without_o they_o in_o singularity_n 3●_n the_o multitude_n of_o the_o believer_n be_v of_o one_o hart_n
mystical_a speech_n wherein_o the_o scripture_n give_v the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n to_o that_o which_o it_o betoken_v as_o of_o 27._o the_o passover_o to_o the_o lamb_n and_o of_o christ._n the_o rock_n to_o christ._n for_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v not_o conclude_v of_o this_o show_n that_o real_o christ_n be_v a_o rock_n or_o a_o lamb_n the_o passover_o real_o hart._n these_o speech_n be_v not_o like_a to_o that_o of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o when_o the_o lamb_n be_v call_v the_o passover_o and_o christ_n the_o rock_n it_o be_v mean_v not_o real_o but_o figurative_o that_o the_o rock_n signify_v christ_n the_o lamb_n the_o passover_o but_o it_o be_v not_o manifest_a in_o that_o of_o christ_n body_n rainoldes_n whither_o it_o be_v manifest_a or_o no_o be_v not_o the_o question_n but_o whither_o the_o speech_n be_v like_a in_o show_n of_o word_n the_o rock_n be_v christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n or_o to_o come_v near_o to_o your_o own_o example_n and_o proof_n of_o that_o point_n christ_n say_v of_o himself_o that_o 3●_n he_o be_v true_a bread_n and_o 55._o my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n indeed_o and_o my_o blood_n be_v drink_v indeed_o true_a and_o indeed_o these_o term_n be_v more_o pregnant_a for_o a_o real_a presence_n then_o that_o of_o christ_n body_n yet_o if_o you_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v bread_n real_o and_o his_o flesh_n meat_n and_o his_o blood_n drink_n you_o may_v as_o well_o say_v that_o he_o be_v real_o 1._o a_o vine_n and_o his_o disciple_n 5._o branch_n real_o and_o other_o such_o real_a either_o blasphemy_n or_o folly_n hart._n nay_o we_o do_v confess_v that_o many_o thing_n in_o scripture_n be_v speak_v and_o mean_v figurative_o but_o neither_o all_o nor_o this_o concern_v the_o sacrament_n nor_o any_o thing_n else_o whereof_o the_o literal_a and_o proper_a sense_n have_v not_o somewhat_o contrary_a to_o god_n to_o religion_n and_o to_o christian_a life_n as_o 22._o d._n allen_n say_v that_o s._n 15._o austin_n teach_v out_o of_o 10._o who_o he_o cit_v withal_o a_o worthy_a sentence_n touch_v such_o as_o you_o be_v if_o the_o mind_n be_v prevent_v with_o a_o opinion_n of_o some_o error_n whatsoever_o the_o scripture_n do_v affirm_v otherwise_o man_n think_v it_o to_o be_v speak_v figurative_o rainoldes_n that_o sentence_n be_v good_a as_o s._n austin_n utter_v it_o but_o d._n allen_n use_v it_o ill_o against_o us._n the_o worse_a because_o s._n austin_n show_v straight_o upon_o it_o 16._o in_o the_o same_o book_n of_o the_o same_o point_n that_o to_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n be_v speak_v not_o proper_o for_o so_o it_o be_v a_o wicked_a deed_n but_o figurative_o flat_a against_o that_o error_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n which_o he_o be_v pretend_v to_o prove_v by_o d._n allen._n but_o howsoever_o d._n allen_n deal_v in_o that_o the_o point_n which_o you_o grant_v with_o he_o suffice_v i_o for_o proof_n of_o that_o i_o say_v for_o if_o many_o thing_n in_o scripture_n be_v speak_v and_o mean_v figurative_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v against_o the_o show_n of_o word_n in_o sundry_a place_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o show_n of_o word_n sundry_a time_n be_v against_o the_o truth_n which_o since_o you_o can_v see_v in_o this_o sacrament_n because_o of_o your_o prejudice_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n i_o will_v bring_v a_o example_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n wherein_o you_o must_v needs_o see_v it_o there_o be_v haeres_fw-la some_o of_o old_a who_o as_o we_o sprinkle_v child_n with_o water_n in_o baptise_v of_o they_o so_o they_o use_v to_o print_v and_o stamp_v certain_a mark_n upon_o they_o with_o fire_n for_o the_o which_o usage_n they_o allege_v the_o scripture_n i_o mean_v the_o word_n thereof_o that_o touch_v john_n baptist_n 3.16_o who_o say_v of_o himself_o i_o baptize_v you_o with_o water_n add_v of_o our_o saviour_n he_o will_v baptize_v you_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o fire_n now_o i_o put_v the_o matter_n to_o your_o own_o judgement_n whether_o they_o do_v better_a who_o baptize_v with_o fire_n or_o we_o who_o without_o it_o hart._n who_o doubt_v but_o we_o for_o they_o be_v deceive_v who_o take_v the_o name_n of_o fire_n proper_o in_o that_o place_n where_o it_o be_v use_v figurative_o to_o signify_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o lighten_v and_o purge_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a they_o who_o do_v baptize_v in_o that_o sort_n be_v heretic_n as_o 3._o alphonsus_n show_v rainoldes_n yet_o the_o show_n of_o word_n do_v make_v more_o for_o they_o john_n baptize_v with_o water_n christ_n baptize_v with_o fire_n neither_o have_v you_o here_o so_o much_o as_o that_o evasion_n which_o yet_o if_o you_o have_v be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n that_o it_o be_v manifest_a to_o be_v mean_v not_o proper_o but_o figurative_o for_o there_o have_v be_v 10._o sundry_a church_n and_o nation_n these_o many_o hundred_o year_n that_o use_v it_o and_o do_v still_o induce_v all_o thereto_o by_o the_o show_n of_o word_n as_o manifest_a to_o be_v mean_v not_o figurative_o but_o proper_o in_o their_o judgement_n and_o your_o real_a presence_n have_v not_o go_v so_o far_o in_o the_o one_o sacrament_n with_o this_o be_v my_o body_n as_o their_o fiery_a mark_n have_v go_v in_o the_o other_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o fire_n wherefore_o to_o return_v to_o the_o point_n in_o question_n although_o it_o may_v seem_v by_o the_o show_n of_o word_n that_o our_o saviour_n promise_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o peter_n only_o yet_o since_o he_o mean_v they_o to_o all_o the_o apostle_n as_o i_o have_v declare_v your_o claim_n will_v be_v a_o bare_a show_n if_o all_o your_o proof_n be_v show_v of_o word_n and_o therefore_o as_o i_o say_v so_o i_o say_v again_o that_o you_o must_v bring_v we_o forth_o some_o better_a evidence_n or_o else_o your_o title_n will_v be_v naught_o hart._n and_o i_o tell_v you_o again_o that_o the_o evidence_n be_v good_a and_o have_v not_o only_o show_v of_o word_n but_o sense_n too_o if_o it_o be_v right_o take_v but_o we_o retain_v not_o you_o to_o be_v our_o lawyer_n to_o expound_v it_o rainoldes_n i_o be_o not_o in_o haste_n to_o be_v retain_v of_o you_o but_o what_o mislike_v you_o in_o my_o expound_v of_o it_o hart._n that_o which_o shall_v keep_v i_o from_o yield_v thereunto_o for_o your_o exposition_n be_v a_o private_a exposition_n which_o we_o allow_v not_o of_o we_o allow_v only_o of_o the_o church_n exposition_n rainoldes_n then_o i_o perceive_v the_o church_n shall_v be_v your_o lawyer_n and_o what_o be_v i_o pray_v you_o the_o church_n exposition_n hart._n 5._o that_o which_o all_o the_o father_n make_v with_o one_o consent_n rainoldes_n which_o all_o the_o father_n make_v we_o have_v need_n to_o have_v body_n like_o the_o body_n of_o oak_n and_o memory_n as_o strong_a as_o steel_n to_o endure_v to_o read_v and_o be_v sure_a to_o remember_v of_o every_o exposition_n so_o much_o as_o may_v ascertain_v we_o that_o all_o the_o father_n make_v it_o have_v any_o man_n live_v read_v they_o all_o nay_o have_v all_o the_o man_n live_v read_v they_o nay_o can_v they_o show_v they_o can_v they_o get_v they_o i_o have_v almost_o say_v can_v they_o name_v they_o hart._n womeane_v of_o the_o father_n which_o be_v extant_a common_o and_o may_v be_v have_v and_o read_v if_o many_o of_o they_o make_v it_o and_o the_o rest_n either_o gainsay_v it_o not_o or_o say_v nought_o of_o it_o we_o count_v it_o to_o be_v make_v of_o all_o with_o one_o consent_n rainoldes_n that_o count_n be_v evil_a cast_n for_o as_o in_o the_o writing_n of_o father_n which_o we_o have_v some_o one_o expound_v place_n of_o scripture_n oftentimes_o otherwise_o then_o all_o the_o rest_n exod._n a_o thing_n notorious_a and_o confess_v so_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o in_o those_o which_o we_o have_v not_o some_o place_n be_v otherwise_o expound_v they_o they_o be_v in_o those_o which_o we_o have_v yet_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o you_o have_v reason_n so_o to_o count_v for_o else_o your_o lawyer_n have_v be_v dumb_a and_o can_v not_o have_v speak_v a_o word_n for_o his_o client_n but_o if_o this_o be_v your_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n exposition_n then_o i_o can_v have_v make_v my_o exposition_n the_o church_n with_o a_o wet_a finger_n if_o i_o will_v have_v stuff_v it_o with_o the_o name_n of_o father_n for_o my_o word_n of_o peter_n that_o he_o alone_o make_v answer_n for_o all_o the_o apostle_n &_o receive_v the_o key_n together_o with_o they_o all_o be_v the_o word_n of_o 118._o s._n austin_n though_o i_o do_v
by_o which_o a_o entrance_n into_o heaven_n be_v open_v because_o the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n be_v as_o it_o be_v unlock_v to_o they_o who_o have_v remission_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o lock_v to_o the_o rest_n which_o thing_n be_v so_o this_o sum_n arise_v of_o they_o that_o since_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v of_o remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n christ_n therefore_o when_o he_o promise_v the_o key_n mean_v that_o power_n and_o when_o he_o give_v that_o power_n give_v the_o key_n but_o he_o give_v that_o power_n to_o all_o the_o apostle_n it_o follow_v then_o he_o give_v the_o key_n to_o they_o all_o hart._n you_o expound_v these_o place_n i_o can_v tell_v how_o for_o much_o of_o that_o which_o you_o say_v be_v say_v by_o we_o also_o and_o yet_o you_o agree_v not_o with_o we_o in_o the_o principal_a howsoever_o you_o cast_v the_o parcel_n of_o your_o count_n there_o be_v a_o fault_n in_o the_o sum_n wherefore_o you_o must_v pardon_v i_o if_o i_o allow_v it_o not_o for_o to_o use_v 1._o his_o word_n who_o opinion_n though_o you_o mislike_v he_o i_o far_o esteem_v above_o you_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o christ_n promise_v to_o peter_n he_o simple_o mean_v all_o power_n whereby_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n in_o whatsoever_o sense_n you_o take_v it_o may_v be_v shut_v and_o open_v as_o for_o that_o which_o follow_v 16.19_o and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n clavium_fw-la this_o be_v not_o as_o some_o have_v think_v a_o explication_n or_o limitation_n of_o the_o key_n for_o so_o by_o those_o word_n shall_v christ_n have_v restrain_v the_o power_n of_o peter_n to_o the_o only_a outward_a ecclesiastical_a court_n for_o sententia_fw-la it_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o all_o the_o schoolman_n that_o by_o those_o word_n 18.18_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v and_o so_o forth_o which_o be_v like_a to_o these_o word_n speak_v unto_o peter_n and_o have_v the_o same_o meaning_n a_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n in_o the_o outward_a court_n be_v make_v as_o by_o those_o other_o word_n 20.23_o who_o sin_n you_o remit_v and_o so_o forth_o a_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n in_o the_o inward_a court_n be_v make_v wherefore_o if_o 1●_n in_o this_o place_n that_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v be_v a_o explication_n or_o limitation_n of_o the_o key_n then_o by_o the_o name_n of_o key_n be_v promise_v to_o peter_n a_o power_n judicial_a only_o in_o the_o outward_a court_n which_o be_v but_o a_o part_n and_o that_o a_o lesser_a part_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n for_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o excellent_a be_v the_o power_n of_o remit_v sin_n then_o of_o excommunicate_v or_o suspend_v a_o man_n from_o his_o office_n or_o honour_n and_o therefore_o this_o may_v be_v exercise_v by_o he_o that_o be_v not_o a_o priest_n whereas_o the_o other_o belong_v unto_o priest_n only_o again_o because_o our_o saviour_n ●it_n add_v with_o a_o conjunction_n &_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v it_o must_v note_v different_o some_o distinct_a power_n at_o the_o least_o in_o special_a even_o as_o the_o other_o thing_n all_o that_o go_v before_o utter_v coniunctive_o be_v thing_n distinct_a and_o different_a to_o wit_n and_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o and_o upon_o this_o peter_n and_o hell_n gate_n shall_v not_o prevail_v and_o to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v the_o key_n and_o last_o and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n and_o so_o forth_o wherefore_o in_o these_o last_o word_n be_v promise_v to_o peter_n not_o only_a power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v in_o the_o court_n either_o outward_a or_o inward_a which_o both_o be_v only_o key_n partial_a action_n of_o the_o key_n but_o because_o the_o key_n themselves_o be_v promise_v he_o indefinite_o and_o be_v not_o restrain_v to_o any_o one_o kind_n of_o open_v or_o shut_v doubtless_o all_o the_o power_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o key_n be_v promise_v to_o he_o how_o great_a soever_o it_o be_v and_o of_o what_o sort_n soever_o now_o clavibus_fw-la the_o whole_a power_n and_o correspondent_a full_o and_o even_o to_o the_o key_n be_v to_o open_v and_o shut_v what_o mean_v soever_o it_o be_v do_v by_o for_o to_o open_v and_o shut_v be_v the_o duty_n of_o key_n in_o token_n whereof_o the_o key_n of_o the_o city_n be_v bring_v unto_o the_o chief_a magistrate_n that_o by_o his_o commandment_n the_o city_n may_v be_v shut_v and_o open_v to_o receive_v the_o key_n therefore_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v to_o receive_v the_o power_n of_o shut_v and_o open_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n whither_o you_o take_v the_o name_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n for_o everlasting_a life_n or_o for_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n now_o this_o be_v do_v by_o diverse_a and_o many_o other_o way_n beside_o those_o of_o bind_v and_o lose_v in_o either_o court_n for_o pastor_n do_v open_a and_o shut_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o one_o by_o exercise_v that_o power_n the_o other_o by_o withdraw_v it_o in_o their_o whole_a spiritual_a government_n in_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n in_o minister_a of_o sacrament_n in_o make_v of_o law_n in_o expound_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o declare_v article_n of_o faith_n in_o decide_v point_n of_o controversy_n and_o doubt_n to_o be_v short_a the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v divide_v into_o the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n and_o the_o key_n of_o power_n to_o open_v the_o scripture_n belong_v to_o the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n which_o christ_n himself_o exercise_v in_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o of_o luke_n and_o whereof_o he_o say_v to_o the_o lawyer_n 11.52_o you_o have_v take_v away_o the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n and_o so_o forth_o the_o key_n of_o power_n be_v either_o of_o order_n or_o jurisdiction_n and_o jurisdiction_n itself_o be_v either_o in_o the_o outward_a court_n by_o excommunicate_v by_o suspend_v from_o office_n by_o grant_v of_o pardon_n and_o make_v of_o law_n or_o in_o the_o inward_a court_n by_o forgive_a of_o sin_n all_o this_o clavium_fw-la most_o ample_a power_n &_o correspondent_a whole_o and_o even_o to_o the_o key_n be_v promise_v in_o this_o place_n by_o christ_n to_o peter_n only_o which_o as_o the_o force_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n key_n so_o the_o kind_n of_o speech_n of_o holy_a scripture_n show_v for_o in_o esay_n the_o prophet_n when_o it_o have_v be_v say_v eliachim_n to_o the_o high_a priest_n eliakim_n in_o the_o figure_n of_o christ_n 22.22_o the_o key_n of_o the_o house_n of_o david_n will_v i_o lay_v on_o his_o shoulder_n the_o scripture_n declare_v the_o use_n of_o this_o key_n do_v by_o and_o by_o add_v and_o he_o shall_v open_v and_o none_o shall_v shut_v he_o shall_v shut_v and_o none_o shall_v open_v which_o likewise_o be_v speak_v again_o of_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o apocalypse_n for_o he_o be_v call_v 3.7_o the_o holy_a one_o and_o true_a which_o have_v the_o key_n of_o david_n which_o open_v and_o no_o man_n shut_v shut_v and_o no_o man_n open_v wherefore_o as_o eliakim_n in_o figure_n christ_n in_o truth_n receive_v the_o key_n of_o the_o house_n of_o david_n that_o be_v of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n receive_v withal_o the_o power_n of_o shut_v and_o open_v in_o like_a sort_n s._n peter_n be_v to_o receive_v in_o the_o room_n and_o steed_n of_o christ_n the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v out_o of_o controversy_n to_o receive_v withal_o the_o power_n of_o shut_v and_o open_v that_o be_v to_o say_v not_o only_o of_o bind_v and_o lose_v in_o judgement_n of_o both_o the_o court_n which_o be_v only_o clau●um_fw-la partial_a not_o total_a and_o lesser_o not_o chief_a action_n of_o the_o key_n which_o also_o be_v commit_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o eightienth_n of_o matthew_n and_o twenty_o of_o john_n fuerint_fw-la whereas_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n alone_o but_o also_o beside_o of_o govern_v of_o teach_v of_o dispose_v and_o do_v all_o thing_n which_o may_v any_o way_n belong_v to_o the_o general_a duty_n of_o a_o pastor_n which_o action_n be_v full_o and_o even_o correspondent_a to_o the_o key_n themselves_o and_o therefore_o in_o those_o word_n be_v promise_v omnes_fw-la to_o peter_n alone_o principal_o before_o and_o over_o all_o the_o rest_n this_o be_v d._n stapletons_n judgement_n of_o the_o key_n promise_v to_o peter_n wherein_o the_o ground_n of_o peter_n supremacy_n and_o headship_n over_o the_o apostle_n be_v set_v down_o very_o plain_o
the_o apostle_n to_o their_o brethren_n and_o etc._n they_o pay_v it_o so_o do_v 1●_n all_o the_o faithful_a every_o one_o to_o his_o brethren_n according_a to_o that_o measure_n of_o grace_n which_o god_n have_v give_v they_o 12.25_o as_o be_v all_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n and_o therefore_o each_o to_o help_v other_o our_o 8._o english_a chronicle_n have_v a_o story_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o confessor_n and_o godwin_n earl_n of_o kent_n that_o when_o they_o be_v sit_v at_o table_n together_o harald_n the_o king_n cupbearer_n the_o earl_n son_n do_v stumble_v so_o with_o one_o foot_n that_o he_o be_v down_o almost_o but_o recover_v himself_o with_o the_o other_o foot_n he_o neither_o fall_v nor_o shed_v the_o drink_n whereat_o when_o the_o earl_n smile_v and_o say_v now_o one_o brother_n help_v a_o other_o the_o king_n call_v to_o mind_n his_o brother_n alfred_n death_n who_o the_o earl_n have_v slay_v behold_v he_o with_o a_o displease_a countenance_n and_o say_v so_o may_v my_o brother_n also_o have_v holpen_v i_o if_o thou_o have_v not_o be_v in_o the_o which_o story_n the_o cupbearer_n who_o stumble_v do_v show_v that_o one_o foot_n may_v strengthen_v a_o other_o and_o stay_v they_o both_o that_o they_o fall_v not_o the_o earl_n who_o observe_v therein_o a_o brother_n duty_n do_v show_v that_o the_o young_a may_v strengthen_v the_o elder_a or_o the_o elder_a the_o yoong_a the_o king_n who_o remember_v his_o own_o estate_n by_o it_o do_v show_v that_o the_o inferior_a may_v strengthen_v the_o superior_a yea_o the_o member_n the_o head_n by_o the_o proportion_n of_o which_o point_v a_o man_n of_o reason_n may_v see_v that_o a_o equal_a in_o all_o respect_n may_v strengthen_v a_o equal_a that_o among_o unequalles_n the_o left_a may_v strengthen_v the_o right_n and_o the_o right_a the_o left_a yea_o that_o a_o arm_n that_o a_o foot_n may_v strengthen_v the_o head_n and_o save_v it_o perhaps_o from_o take_v such_o a_o fall_n as_o will_v crush_v it_o in_o piece_n wherefore_o the_o charge_n of_o peter_n to_o strengthen_v his_o brethren_n be_v no_o sufficient_a proof_n that_o he_o be_v make_v head_n of_o the_o mean_a among_o the_o faithful_a much_o less_o of_o the_o pastor_n who_o 5.1_o he_o call_v his_o fellow-elders_a and_o least_o of_o all_o of_o the_o apostle_n 28.19_o who_o commission_n be_v the_o same_o with_o he_o to_o all_o nation_n hart._n it_o be_v true_a that_o other_o may_v strengthen_v their_o brethren_n as_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n but_o christ_n command_v peter_n to_o do_v it_o as_o their_o head_n which_o may_v be_v gather_v 8._o by_o the_o occasion_n whereon_o the_o word_n be_v speak_v for_o when_o there_o arise_v a_o strife_n among_o the_o apostle_n which_o of_o they_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v the_o great_a christ_n say_v unto_o they_o 22.25_o the_o kingesof_n the_o gentile_n do_v reign_v over_o they_o but_o you_o not_o so_o and_o so_o forth_o teach_v they_o that_o libidinem_fw-la all_o desire_n and_o lust_n of_o reign_v aught_o to_o be_v far_o from_o his_o minister_n videretur_fw-la yet_o lest_o he_o shall_v seem_v thereby_o to_o have_v forbid_v withal_o or_o take_v away_o all_o power_n of_o reign_v from_o they_o he_o add_v those_o word_n speak_v to_o peter_n only_o plain_o declare_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a which_o be_v the_o matter_n where_o about_o they_o strive_v rainoldes_n cato_n say_v 2._o that_o he_o marvel_v that_o a_o soothsayer_n do_v not_o laugh_v when_o he_o see_v a_o soothsayer_n i_o think_v the_o professor_n of_o your_o divinity_n shall_v laugh_v when_o they_o see_v one_o a_o other_o for_o they_o prove_v the_o point_n of_o their_o popish_a doctrine_n by_o as_o strong_a reason_n as_o the_o sooth_n sayer_n use_v to_o prove_v their_o divination_n by_o the_o liver_n and_o the_o hart_n and_o other_o entrails_n of_o beast_n but_o child_n be_v persuade_v when_o they_o hear_v a_o ring_n of_o bell_n that_o the_o bell_n speak_v whatsoever_o they_o have_v fancy_v at_o least_o like_v unto_o it_o the_o lord_n when_o the_o apostle_n do_v strive_v about_o dominion_n and_o superiority_n tell_v they_o that_o none_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v among_o the_o rest_n as_o king_n among_o the_o gentile_n yet_o lest_o he_o shall_v seem_v withal_o to_o have_v forbid_v all_o dominion_n among_o they_o he_o appoint_v peter_n to_o be_v their_o supreme_a head_n thus_o say_v the_o soothsayer_n but_o what_o say_v the_o scripture_n in_o effect_v the_o clean_a contrary_n for_o it_o show_v that_o christ_n 2d_o have_v reprove_v they_o for_o strive_v who_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a and_o thirst_v to_o be_v lord_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o earthly_a king_n ●6_n teach_v they_o that_o a_o humble_v of_o themselves_o to_o their_o brethren_n and_o a_o desire_n to_o do_v good_a by_o serve_v each_o of_o other_o must_v be_v the_o preeminence_n that_o they_o shall_v seek_v as_o 27._o he_o have_v do_v and_o as_o 28._o they_o have_v be_v partaker_n of_o his_o trouble_n so_o 29._o have_v he_o appoint_v to_o they_o a_o kingdom_n also_o 30._o to_o make_v they_o partaker_n of_o that_o bliss_n and_o glory_n in_o which_o he_o shall_v reign_v himself_o as_o king_n of_o king_n &_o they_o as_o counsellor_n about_o he_o sit_v on_o 19.28_o twelve_o throne_n to_o judge_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n now_o the_o former_a part_n of_o this_o speech_n of_o christ_n debar_v the_o apostle_n all_o from_o that_o supremacy_n of_o papa_n our_o most_o holy_a lord_n the_o pope_n which_o you_o will_v put_v on_o peter_n the_o late_a have_v great_a colour_n for_o his_o dream_n who_o say_v that_o christ_n remove_v libidinem_fw-la all_o lust_n of_o reign_a ftom_n his_o minister_n and_o potestatem_fw-la not_o all_o power_n of_o reign_v because_o it_o mention_v a_o kingdom_n that_o christ_n appoint_v for_o they_o but_o this_o import_v rather_o a_o equality_n of_o peter_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n since_o the_o state_n be_v common_a and_o throne_n be_v give_v to_o they_o al._n or_o if_o there_o may_v be_v even_o so_o notwithstanding_o a_o superiority_n as_o at_o a_o council_n table_n there_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o sit_v one_o before_o a_o other_o yet_o be_v that_o nothing_o unto_o that_o supremacy_n which_o you_o claim_v for_o peter_n for_o to_o serve_v your_o purpose_n christ_n shall_v have_v say_v that_o he_o will_v establish_v they_o all_o in_o seat_n of_o honour_n but_o peter_n in_o a_o throne_n like_o 10.18_o the_o throne_n of_o solomon_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v their_o pope_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v his_o cardinal_n 8._o to_o sedebitis_fw-la sit_v about_o the_o throne_n and_o be_v both_o ●●●rarum_fw-la counsellor_n to_o he_o and_o judge_n with_o he_o of_o all_o the_o earth_n hart._n it_o be_v a_o folly_n i_o see_v for_o i_o to_o reason_n with_o you_o if_o you_o be_v resolve_v to_o cast_v of_o so_o weighty_a reason_n as_o trifle_n rainoldes_n a_o folly_n indeed_o if_o you_o go_v about_o to_o make_v i_o esteem_v of_o molehill_n as_o mountain_n hart._n i_o go_v not_o about_o it_o but_o this_o that_o the_o reason_n which_o be_v in_o truth_n as_o mountain_n you_o will_v esteem_v they_o so_o rainoldes_n then_o you_o must_v prove_v they_o so_o but_o if_o your_o mountain_n travel_n and_o be_v deliver_v of_o a_o mouse_n you_o may_v not_o look_v that_o i_o shall_v admire_v it_o as_o a_o giant_n hart._n well_o let_v we_o leave_v the_o occasion_n of_o christ_n word_n and_o weigh_v the_o word_n in_o themselves_o 8._o for_o there_o be_v two_o thing_n which_o christ_n do_v therein_o first_o in_o the_o common_a danger_n of_o all_o he_o strengthen_v peter_n only_a satan_n have_v desire_v you_o to_o winnow_v you_o as_o wheat_n but_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o then_o lest_o that_o strengthen_n shall_v seem_v to_o have_v be_v make_v for_o peter_n own_o sake_n alone_o or_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o personal_a faith_n he_o add_v and_o thou_o be_v convert_v strengthen_v thy_o brethren_n show_v that_o he_o be_v strengthen_v in_o the_o faith_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v strengthen_v the_o faith_n of_o all_o other_o as_o who_o shall_v be_v afterward_o the_o pastor_n of_o they_o all_o rainoldes_n it_o be_v a_o needless_a labour_n for_o i_o to_o spend_v word_n in_o these_o your_o two_o point_n if_o you_o have_v mark_v that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v already_o for_o i_o show_v that_o the_o former_a argue_v his_o weakness_n the_o late_a open_v his_o duty_n but_o neither_o prove_v any_o preeminence_n at_o all_o save_v a_o preeminence_n in_o frailty_n the_o truth_n be_v that_o christ_n in_o those_o word_n do_v three_o thing_n whereof_o one_o be_v a_o boil_v and_o therefore_o you_o touch_v it_o not_o for_o in_o the_o danger_n of_o they_o all_o but_o
flock_n and_o what_o be_v this_o to_o peter_n successor_n the_o pope_n who_o preach_v not_o as_o peter_n do_v for_o 4._o he_o use_v not_o to_o preach_v but_o when_o he_o say_v mass_n nor_o then_o unless_o he_o listen_v and_o 5._o he_o say_v not_o mass_n but_o on_o a_o few_o high_a feast_n nor_o then_o if_o he_o be_v let_v and_o the_o italian_a government_n special_o 6._o the_o papacy_n so_o discreet_o manage_v must_v needs_o have_v let_v we_o a_o number_n his_o princely_a care_n do_v trouble_v he_o he_o leave_v priestly_a to_o the_o friar_n wherefore_o that_o sacrilegious_a usurper_n of_o rome_n commit_v two_o evil_n against_o both_o the_o head_n and_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n against_o the_o head_n in_o that_o he_o make_v the_o prerogative_n of_o one_o pastor_n common_a to_o all_o pope_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o christ._n against_o the_o body_n in_o that_o he_o claim_v the_o title_n of_o christ_n vicar_n as_o proper_a to_o himself_o which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o pastor_n hart._n nay_o you_o who_o 4_o revile_v the_o high_a priest_n of_o god_n commit_v a_o great_a evil_n but_o he_o commit_v none_o at_o all_o for_o he_o take_v not_o the_o prerogative_n of_o one_o pastor_n as_o christ_n but_o under_o christ._n and_o he_o claim_v the_o title_n of_o christ_n vicar_n by_o a_o excellency_n as_o the_o chief_a and_o general_a though_o all_o other_o bishop_n be_v christ_n vicar_n also_o rainoldes_n this_o be_v to_o roale_z the_o stone_n of_o sisyphus_n you_o drive_v it_o up_o the_o hill_n and_o still_o it_o slip_v backward_o yet_o cease_v you_o not_o to_o strive_v but_o you_o strive_v in_o vain_a for_o though_o you_o fetch_v it_o up_o never_o so_o often_o down_o again_o it_o will_n all_o bishop_n you_o say_v be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o pope_n claim_v that_o title_n by_o a_o excellency_n true_a by_o a_o excellency_n he_o rob_v all_o bishop_n of_o that_o honour_n which_o christ_n have_v give_v they_o for_o he_o do_v account_v they_o all_o to_o be_v his_o vicar_n as_o cardinal_n 62._o turrecremata_fw-la call_v they_o express_o the_o vicar_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o prove_v by_o sequenti_fw-la the_o pope_n own_o law_n that_o they_o be_v so_o wherefore_o if_o you_o will_v have_v they_o christ_n vicar_n too_o the_o matter_n must_v be_v help_v out_o with_o your_o distinction_n that_o first_o and_o direct_o they_o be_v the_o pope_n vicar_n and_o christ_n by_o a_o consequent_a and_o secondarilie_o as_o for_o the_o man_n who_o you_o call_v the_o high_a priest_n of_o god_n i_o know_v he_o not_o for_o he_o be_v not_o the_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o jew_n i_o trow_v and_o christian_n have_v no_o high_a priest_n but_o the_o son_n of_o the_o high_a even_o he_o of_o who_o 2d_o it_o be_v write_v such_o a_o high_a priest_n it_o become_v we_o to_o have_v which_o be_v holy_a harmless_a undefiled_a separate_a from_o sinner_n and_o make_v high_a than_o the_o heaven_n wherefore_o i_o speak_v not_o the_o word_n of_o revile_v but_o of_o truth_n and_o modesty_n when_o i_o call_v he_o a_o sacrilegious_a usurper_n who_o take_v the_o crown_n of_o the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o fet_v it_o on_o his_o own_o head_n this_o do_v that_o man_n of_o sin_n who_o say_v that_o obedient_a it_o be_v necessary_a for_o every_o man_n unto_o salvation_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o they_o who_o say_v he_o have_v not_o charge_n over_o they_o be_v not_o of_o christ_n sheep_n because_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o john_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o flock_n and_o one_o pastor_n hart._n you_o need_v not_o account_v it_o so_o heinous_a a_o matter_n to_o conclude_v that_o doctrine_n by_o these_o word_n of_o christ._n chief_o since_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o he_o mean_v they_o rather_o of_o the_o pope_n then_o himself_o for_o he_o say_v there_o shall_v be_v one_o flock_n and_o one_o pastor_n he_o say_v not_o there_o have_v be_v but_o there_o shall_v be_v now_o himself_o as_o be_v god_n be_v always_o pastor_n of_o the_o gentile_n also_o no_o less_o they_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o so_o in_o respect_n of_o he_o there_o have_v before_o be_v one_o flock_n and_o one_o pastor_n wherefore_o since_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o thing_n that_o shall_v be_v not_o that_o have_v be_v already_o he_o may_v be_v well_o think_v to_o have_v mean_v not_o himself_o but_o the_o pope_n rather_o who_o in_o his_o steed_n be_v pastor_n both_o of_o jew_n and_o gentile_n rainoldes_n have_v the_o gentile_n always_o god_n for_o their_o pastor_n as_o well_o as_o the_o jew_n what_o mean_v s._n paul_n then_o who_o say_v 2.12_o to_o the_o gentile_n you_o be_v without_o christ_n and_o aliens_n from_o the_o common_a wealth_n of_o israel_n and_o stranger_n from_o the_o covenant_n of_o promise_n and_o have_v no_o hope_n and_o be_v without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n for_o 80.1_o god_n be_v call_v pastor_n in_o respect_n of_o they_o who_o he_o guide_v and_o feed_v with_o the_o food_n of_o life_n so_o that_o if_o he_o be_v pastor_n of_o the_o gentile_n always_o as_o you_o say_v he_o be_v then_o they_o be_v always_o faithful_a and_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v the_o hope_n of_o god_n in_o christ._n but_o if_o they_o be_v before_o without_o christ_n without_o hope_n without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n and_o aliens_n from_o the_o common_a wealth_n of_o israel_n that_o be_v the_o church_n and_o stranger_n from_o the_o covenant_n of_o promise_n make_v to_o the_o faithful_a as_o they_o be_v s._n paul_n say_v then_o neither_o be_v they_o one_o flock_n with_o the_o jew_n neither_o be_v god_n their_o one_o pastor_n wherefore_o what_o ●oever_o show_v of_o probability_n the_o pope_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v for_o abuse_v those_o word_n to_o maintain_v his_o own_o pride_n in_o truth_n they_o agree_v to_o he_o 2.14_o who_o break_v the_o stop_n of_o the_o partition-wall_n and_o make_v of_o both_o one_o that_o be_v to_o christ_n jesus_n and_o only_o to_o christ._n hart._n well_o if_o the_o word_n agree_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n perhaps_o in_o one_o sense_n they_o may_v in_o a_o other_o for_o there_o be_v sundry_a sense_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o in_o general_n two_o as_o 5._o father_z robert_z show_v whereof_o the_o one_o be_v call_v historical_a or_o literal_a the_o other_o mystical_a or_o spiritual_a and_o so_o the_o speech_n of_o christ_n touch_v one_o pastor_n may_v signify_v the_o pope_n in_o a_o mystical_a sense_n though_o not_o in_o the_o literal_a as_o likewise_o the_o name_n of_o high_a priest_n signify_v the_o jewish_a literal_o do_v mystical_o betoken_v he_o rainoldes_n that_o sense_n be_v the_o right_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o author_n of_o they_o mean_v now_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v utter_v they_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o not_o the_o word_n only_o do_v signify_v thing_n according_a to_o their_o natural_a sense_n but_o the_o thing_n also_o express_v by_o the_o word_n do_v signify_v other_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o lord_n ordinance_n who_o shadow_v that_o by_o figure_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o new_a as_o for_o example_n it_o be_v write_v in_o 12.46_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n you_o shall_v not_o break_v a_o bone_n of_o he_o these_o word_n be_v speak_v touch_v the_o lamb_n of_o the_o passover_o and_o signify_v as_o they_o sound_v that_o the_o jew_n shall_v dress_v it_o whole_a without_o break_v any_o bone_n thereof_o but_o this_o thing_n do_v signify_v a_o far_a thing_n in_o secret_a to_o weet_v that_o when_o 3●_n christ_n who_o be_v represent_v &_o figure_v by_o the_o lamb_n shall_v suffer_v death_n to_o save_v we_o a_o bone_n of_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v break_v thus_o of_o one_o place_n there_o be_v two_o sense_n the_o former_a call_v literal_a because_o the_o letter_n as_o it_o be_v that_o be_v the_o very_a word_n be_v understand_v aright_o do_v import_v it_o and_o the_o late_a mystical_a because_o the_o thing_n import_v and_o mean_v by_o the_o letter_n do_v betoken_v a_o deep_a mystery_n of_o these_o the_o literal_a sense_n be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o word_n be_v make_v to_o open_v the_o conceit_n of_o our_o mind_n and_o so_o be_v they_o use_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o show_v the_o will_n of_o god_n unto_o us._n the_o mystical_a be_v know_v to_o be_v his_o meaning_n also_o when_o himself_o reveal_v it_o as_o he_o have_v do_v in_o that_o touch_v the_o lamb_n otherwise_o it_o be_v not_o for_o man_n may_v devise_v many_o mystical_a sense_n of_o a_o place_n in_o scripture_n and_o they_o one_o contrary_a to_o a_o other_o as_o often_o time_n they_o do_v which_o all_o can_v not_o be_v mean_v by_o
m._n hart_n to_o judge_v there_o be_v a_o just_a judge_n who_o will_v reveal_v it_o in_o that_o day_n before_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o man_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n he_o do_v reveal_v it_o daily_o to_o they_o who_o he_o make_v wise_a to_o try_v spirit_n &_o to_o discern_v the_o truth_n from_o error_n as_o for_o this_o particular_a wherein_o we_o seem_v to_o you_o most_o unhonest_a and_o partial_a that_o in_o peter_n epistle_n we_o take_v the_o word_n babylon_n proper_o for_o the_o city_n of_o that_o name_n in_o chaldaea_n and_o in_o the_o revelation_n we_o say_v that_o it_o signify_v rome_n figurative_o we_o do_v not_o this_o for_o any_o advantage_n of_o heresy_n as_o you_o false_o charge_v we_o but_o in_o sincerity_n before_o god_n for_o in_o the_o revelation_n in_o which_o there_o be_v as_o many_o presb●t_fw-la mystery_n as_o word_n and_o word_n apply_v common_o to_o allegory_n and_o figure_n rome_n may_v be_v fit_o mean_v by_o the_o name_n of_o babylon_n and_o that_o it_o be_v so_o it_o apperé_v by_o the_o circumstance_n if_o not_o of_o ●_o the_o seven_o hill_n whereon_o rome_n be_v build_v and_o 17._o jerom_n gather_v it_o thereof_o yet_o of_o 17.18_o the_o great_a city_n which_o reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o in_o s._n johns_n time_n be_v rome_n 〈…〉_o the_o father_n so_o interpret_v it_o you_o say_v it_o and_o subscribe_v unto_o it_o but_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n where_o thing_n be_v plain_o speak_v off_o it_o si●teth_v most_o with_o reason_n that_o the_o word_n babylon_n be_v take_v in_o his_o proper_a meaning_n the_o text_n do_v force_v it_o in_o ●3_n other_o place_n and_o in_o that_o epistle_n of_o peter_n it_o be_v the_o likely_a because_o 4.16_o the_o like_a speech_n in_o superscription_n in_o salutation_n in_o date_n of_o epistle_n be_v elsewhere_o mean_v simple_o in_o the_o revelation_n 11.8_o the_o great_a city_n be_v call_v spiritual_o sodom_n in_o ●_o peter_n epistle_n we_o take_v the_o name_n of_o sodom_n proper_o be_v it_o partiality_n in_o we_o to_o take_v it_o so_o or_o be_v it_o not_o a_o folly_n in_o you_o to_o reprove_v it_o but_o this_o be_v the_o matter_n belike_o which_o pinch_v you_o that_o in_o the_o revelation_n where_o all_o evil_a be_v speak_v of_o babylon_n we_o will_v have_v it_o signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o rome_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n also_o not_o the_o temporal_a state_n of_o the_o heathen_a empire_n there_o as_o the_o father_n interpret_v it_o the_o father_n then_o interpret_v it_o of_o rome_n you_o confess_v if_o you_o condemn_v we_o for_o interpret_n it_o so_o you_o must_v condemn_v they_o with_o us._n if_o you_o say_v that_o we_o do_v not_o therein_o as_o they_o because_o we_o expound_v it_o of_o nothing_o else_o but_o rome_n and_o they_o not_o so_o you_o slander_v us._n for_o marlora●●_n some_o of_o we_o expound_v it_o of_o the_o city_n of_o the_o devil_n that_o be_v the_o society_n and_o company_n of_o all_o the_o wicked_a as_o some_o of_o they_o do_v and_o what_o do_v it_o advantage_n you_o or_o your_o quarrel_n if_o as_o by_o 21.10_o jerusalem_n be_v mean_v the_o city_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o society_n and_o company_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a so_o rome_n a_o other_o babylon_n do_v note_v the_o devil_n city_n as_o a_o figure_n and_o sampler_n of_o it_o for_o in_o this_o sort_n also_o will_v babylon_n be_v rome_n stil._n wherein_o that_o you_o may_v learn_v the_o less_o to_o carp_v at_o we_o harken_v to_o 6._o your_o jesuit_n who_o have_v show_v that_o the_o whore_n which_o sit_v on_o the_o seven_o hill_n be_v in_o rupert_n some_o man_n judgement_n the_o city_n of_o the_o devil_n which_o often_o time_n be_v call_v babylon_n and_o set_v against_o jerusalem_n the_o city_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o church_n but_o in_o my_o judgement_n say_v he_o it_o be_v better_o to_o understand_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o whore_n as_o 3_o tertullian_n and_o 11._o jerom_n do_v to_o who_o he_o may_v have_v add_v 1●_n sundry_a of_o the_o grecian_n and_o ●_o s._n austin_n also_o but_o they_o interpret_v it_o you_o say_v of_o the_o temporal_a state_n not_o ecclesiastical_a of_o the_o roman_a empire_n not_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o we_o do_v no_o marvel_n for_o in_o their_o ●aies_n the_o church_n do_v differ_v from_o the_o empire_n the_o empire_n wicked_a church_n godly_a in_o we_o it_o be_v not_o so_o the_o state_n ecclesiastical_a be_v change_v into_o the_o temporal_a the_o church_n have_v swallow_v up_o the_o empire_n and_o what_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v that_o now_o the_o roman_a popedo_n e_o be_v wherefore_o when_o we_o apply_v the_o mystery_n of_o babylon_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o apply_v it_o still_o as_o the_o father_n do_v to_o the_o temporal_a state_n if_o not_o of_o a_o heathen_a empire_n there_o yet_o of_o a_o christian_a wax_v heathenish_a there_o we_o see_v 17.4_o a_o purple_a whore_n sit_v upon_o many_o water_n drunken_a with_o the_o blood_n of_o saint_n and_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n martyr_n have_v a_o golden_a cup_n in_o her_o hand_n full_a of_o abomination_n and_o filthiness_n of_o her_o whoredom_n 8._o sander_n the_o great_a patron_n of_o the_o pope_n monarchy_n do_v prove_v out_o of_o tertullian_n that_o where_o there_o be_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o kingly_a city_n where_o the_o pride_n of_o the_o empire_n where_o the_o persecution_n of_o christian_n do_v rage_n there_o be_v babylon_n no_o doubt_n there_o be_v the_o great_a city_n there_o be_v that_o woman_n which_o sit_v upon_o people_n nation_n and_o language_n with_o who_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n do_v commit_v whooredom_n and_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v drunken_a with_o the_o wine_n of_o her_o whoredom_n now_o rome_n in_o these_o respect_n be_v babylon_n as_o he_o construeth_n it_o while_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n obtain_v the_o temporal_a state_n there_o not_o since_o the_o pope_n have_v have_v it_o but_o let_v the_o state_n of_o the_o popedom_n and_o of_o the_o empire_n be_v compare_v and_o the_o story_n of_o ethnicor_n the_o emperor_n who_o reign_v there_o before_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o etc._n the_o pope_n who_o have_v succéede_v they_o be_v examine_v and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o find_v that_o the_o papal_a state_n have_v match_v the_o imperial_a in_o greatness_n of_o power_n in_o pride_n of_o dominion_n in_o persecute_v of_o christian_n then_o let_v we_o be_v judge_v to_o vary_v from_o the_o father_n in_o give_v rome_n the_o name_n of_o babylon_n else_o be_v we_o clear_v by_o verdict_n of_o sander_n from_o that_o wherewith_o you_o charge_v we_o of_o expound_v it_o to_o the_o advantage_n of_o our_o heresy_n and_o you_o must_v pronounce_v that_o we_o deal_v upright_o with_o the_o name_n of_o babylon_n in_o the_o revelation_n as_o for_o our_o usage_n of_o it_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o peter_n the_o reason_n which_o you_o bring_v to_o prove_v a_o fault_n therein_o may_v serve_v for_o our_o acquittal_n you_o say_v that_o we_o never_o read_v either_o in_o scripture_n or_o other_o holy_a or_o profane_a history_n that_o peter_n be_v ever_o in_o the_o city_n of_o chaldaea_n which_o be_v name_v babylon_n a_o simple_a proof_n if_o we_o have_v not_o for_o the_o apostle_n be_v send_v to_o 19_o all_o nation_n be_v in_o many_o city_n wherein_o we_o never_o read_v they_o be_v and_o yet_o we_o have_v read_v in_o methodius_n a_o ancient_a bishop_n and_o historian_n allege_v by_o 2_o marianus_n scotus_n that_o peter_n do_v preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o 3._o babylon_n that_o be_v either_o the_o city_n or_o at_o least_o the_o country_n and_o where_o they_o preach_v in_o the_o country_n they_o do_v it_o in_o the_o chief_a and_o mother-citie_n common_o but_o the_o ancient_a father_n namely_o s._n jerom_n eusebius_n oecumenius_n &_o many_o more_o agree_v that_o peter_n mean_v rome_n by_o the_o word_n babylon_n they_o deliver_v it_o i_o grant_v but_o they_o receive_v it_o from_o papias_n a_o man_n though_o you_o commend_v he_o for_o the_o apostle_n own_o scholar_n yet_o 36._o of_o very_o small_a judgement_n who_o mistake_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n spèeche_n in_o call_v a_o matter_n of_o great_a weight_n deceive_v many_o father_n that_o follow_v he_o for_o his_o antiquity_n as_o both_o 36._o eusebius_n and_o papias_n jerom_n do_v report_n of_o he_o the_o less_o strange_a it_o be_v if_o they_o beléeve_v he_o and_z other_o they_o in_o this_o point_n of_o no_o such_o importance_n but_o it_o be_v consonant_a to_o that_o which_o follow_v of_o mark_n who_o all_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n agree_v to_o have_v be_v peter_n scholar_n at_o rome_n and_o that_o he_o there_o write_v his_o gospel_n and_o marcus_n this_o do_v come_v
be_v not_o one_o word_n of_o your_o miraculous_a fable_n as_o little_a in_o s._n athanasius_n beside_o that_o the_o sermon_n which_o you_o allege_v as_o he_o be_v in_o atrebat_fw-la your_o own_o edition_n reject_v for_o a_o bastard_n in_o damascene_fw-la there_o be_v more_o yet_o not_o so_o much_o neither_o as_o here_o mariae_fw-la your_o portesse_n have_v but_o he_o be_v 740._o too_o late_a &_o too_o weak_a a_o witness_n to_o prove_v a_o doubtful_a matter_n pretend_v to_o be_v do_v almost_o five_o hundred_o year_n before_o he_o the_o best_a or_o rather_o all_o your_o proof_n be_v s._n denys_n who_o you_o belie_v notable_o for_o where_o say_v he_o that_o which_o you_o do_v father_n on_o he_o hart._n where_o timotheum_n in_o a_o epistle_n of_o he_o to_o s._n timothee_n rainoldes_n he_o write_v no_o such_o epistle_n your_o rhemiste_n do_v mistake_v their_o portesse_n whence_o this_o stuff_n be_v borrow_v for_o read_v there_o that_o denys_n write_v hereof_o to_o timothee_n they_o think_v it_o have_v be_v in_o a_o epistle_n to_o timothee_n the_o place_n which_o they_o mean_v be_v in_o a_o 3._o book_n entitle_v of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n pretend_v to_o be_v write_v to_o timothee_n by_o denys_n hart._n in_o a_o book_n or_o a_o epistle_n it_o be_v a_o great_a matter_n why_o you_o shall_v charge_v they_o with_o lie_v rainoldes_n i_o do_v not_o therefore_o charge_v they_o with_o it_o neither_o will_v i_o mention_v this_o but_o to_o point_v you_o the_o place_n in_o which_o they_o lie_v for_o they_o say_v that_o s._n denys_n write_v these_o &_o these_o thing_n where_o neither_o the_o autour_fw-fr who_o write_v be_v s._n denys_n neither_o write_v he_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o allege_v touch_v the_o thing_n first_o he_o say_v no_o more_o thereof_o but_o that_o among_o the_o bishop_n inspire_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n hierothe●s_v excel_v all_o the_o rest_n save_o the_o apostle_n in_o praise_v christ_n goodness_n when_o himself_o and_o timothee_n and_o many_o of_o their_o holy_a brethren_n 〈◊〉_d come_v together_o to_o behold_v the_o body_n which_o receive_v god_n and_o which_o the_o prince_n of_o life_n be_v in_o as_o for_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o apostle_n bring_v together_o s._n thomas_n come_v the_o third_o day_n after_o the_o angel_n sing_v hymn_n three_o day_n the_o burial_n of_o the_o virgin_n body_n the_o desire_n of_o thomas_n to_o see_v it_o the_o sepulchre_n open_v for_o his_o sake_n and_o the_o body_n assumpt_v into_o heaven_n he_o say_v not_o one_o word_n of_o these_o conceit_n not_o one_o word_n nay_o he_o rather_o say_v against_o they_o for_o he_o note_v namely_o that_o james_n be_v also_o present_a the_o brother_n of_o the_o lord_n and_z peter_n the_o chief_a and_o ancient_a top_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a he_o will_v so_o note_v of_o two_o apostle_n if_o they_o have_v all_o be_v present_a much_o less_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o he_o will_v say_v nothing_o of_o so_o great_a a_o miracle_n if_o any_o such_o have_v happen_v hart._n perhaps_o it_o be_v write_v in_o some_o other_o part_n of_o s._n denys_n work_v rainoldes_n in_o no_o part_n at_o all_o of_o any_o work_n that_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o s._n denys_n hart._n not_o that_o be_v extant_a now_o but_o he_o write_v many_o more_o as_o 20._o nicephorus_n show_v and_o deiparae_fw-la damascene_fw-la make_v mention_n of_o this_o epistle_n to_o timothee_n rainoldes_n nay_o that_o which_o damascene_fw-la mention_v be_v timotheum_n the_o book_n i_o speak_v of_o whence_o all_o that_o he_o cit_v be_v take_v word_n for_o word_n yea_o nicephorus_n also_o 22._o do_v allege_v the_o same_o quote_v timotheum_n the_o very_a chapter_n as_o the_o only_a place_n wherein_o the_o assumption_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v prove_v by_o s._n denys_n the_o more_o do_v i_o marvel_v what_o shall_v move_v your_o rhemist_n to_o say_v that_o s._n denys_n write_v and_o witness_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v bring_v miraculous_o together_o to_o honour_v her_o divine_a departure_n yea_o and_o that_o he_o testify_v of_o his_o own_o hear_n that_o both_o before_o her_o death_n and_o after_o for_o three_o day_n the_o angel_n do_v sing_v most_o melodious_a hymn_n unless_o they_o be_v dispose_v to_o lie_v for_o the_o whetstone_n but_o this_o of_o the_o thing_n the_o other_o of_o the_o autour_fw-fr be_v not_o so_o great_a a_o fault_n yet_o a_o fault_n too_o for_o they_o will_v have_v man_n think_v that_o he_o who_o write_v this_o work_n nominibus_fw-la of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n &_o other_o hierarchia_fw-la of_o the_o heavenly_a &_o church_n ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n as_o he_o term_v it_o be_v areopagita_n the_o famous_a denys_n 17.34_o the_o scholar_n of_o s._n paul_n whereas_o it_o be_v a_o counterfeit_n who_o take_v that_o denys_n name_n upon_o he_o hart._n it_o be_v that_o famous_a denys_n in_o deed_n ●4_n who_o write_v those_o notable_a and_o divine_a work_n and_o other_o in_o which_o he_o confirm_v and_o prove_v plain_o almost_o all_o thing_n that_o the_o church_n now_o use_v in_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o affirm_v that_o he_o learn_v they_o of_o the_o apostle_n give_v also_o testimony_n for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n in_o most_o thing_n now_o controverse_v so_o plain_o that_o your_o man_n have_v no_o shift_n but_o to_o deny_v that_o denys_n to_o have_v be_v the_o autour_fw-fr of_o they_o feign_v that_o they_o be_v a_o other_o of_o late_a age_n which_o be_v a_o old_a sleight_n of_o heretic_n but_o most_o proper_a to_o you_o of_o all_o other_o who_o see_v all_o antiquity_n against_o you_o be_v force_v to_o be_v more_o bold_a or_o rather_o impudent_a they_o other_o in_o that_o point_n rainoldes_n these_o flower_n of_o your_o seminary_n that_o we_o be_v heretic_n bold_a impudent_a that_o all_o antiquity_n be_v against_o we_o you_o may_v spare_v they_o for_o they_o be_v stale_a they_o have_v be_v dip_v in_o gall_n &_o lie_v you_o say_v that_o he_o prove_v plain_o almost_o all_o thing_n that_o the_o church_n now_o use_v in_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n if_o you_o mean_v by_o the_o church_n not_o our_o church_n but_o you_o that_o almost_o must_n have_v favour_n or_o else_o without_o almost_o you_o lavish_a for_o though_o he_o have_v more_o thing_n then_o either_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v or_o we_o do_v allow_v yet_o neither_o all_o that_o you_o have_v &_o many_o that_o you_o have_v not_o and_o some_o clean_a contrary_a to_o you_o as_o namely_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n wherein_o you_o vary_v from_o we_o most_o ●4_n he_o neither_o have_v your_o stagelike_a gesture_n &_o toy_n nor_o invocation_n of_o saint_n nor_o adoration_n of_o creature_n nor_o sacrifice_v of_o christ_n to_o god_n nor_o pray_v for_o the_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n nor_o sole_a receyve_n of_o the_o priest_n nor_o minister_a under_o on●_n kind_a to_o they_o who_o receive_v nor_o exhortation_n lesson_n prayer_n in_o a_o tongue_n which_o the_o people_n do_v not_o understand_v so_o that_o in_o thing_n of_o substance_n and_o not_o of_o ceremony_n only_o he_o differ_v as_o far_o from_o your_o blasphemous_a mass_n as_o he_o be_v near_o to_o our_o communion_n but_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v you_o say_v that_o he_o affirm_v he_o learn_v they_o of_o the_o apostle_n he_o do_v so_o i_o grant_v as_o it_o be_v fit_a for_o he_o 3_o who_o will_v be_v count_v that_o denys_n which_o be_v convert_v by_o s._n paul_n but_o as_o it_o happen_v unto_o counterfeit_v he_o have_v forget_v himself_o in_o one_o place_n and_o so_o betray_v the_o feat_n for_o 7._o speak_v of_o infant_n why_o they_o be_v baptize_v hereof_o say_v he_o we_o say_v those_o thing_n which_o our_o divine_a master_n 〈◊〉_d be_v instruct_v by_o the_o old_a tradition_n have_v bring_v unto_o us._n by_o the_o which_o word_n the_o man_n at_o unaware_o have_v show_v that_o he_o learn_v not_o not_o of_o the_o apostle_n for_o christ_n himself_o instruct_v the_o apostle_n of_o baptism_n they_o have_v it_o not_o from_o old_a tradition_n hart._n that_o be_v a_o weak_a conjecture_n why_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o counterfeit_n for_o he_o may_v call_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n old_a tradition_n though_o it_o be_v but_o certain_a year_n or_o month_n before_o he_o rainoldes_n hardly_o if_o he_o live_v in_o the_o same_o time_n with_o they_o but_o if_o he_o may_v yet_o can_v he_o not_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v instruct_v by_o the_o old_a tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n belike_o his_o master_n be_v young_a man_n hart._n our_o conjecture_n may_v deceive_v we_o we_o must_v not_o trust_v they_o in_o such_o matter_n the_o father_n count_v he_o the_o right_a denys_n for_o christi_fw-la gregory_n nazianzen_n testament_n origen_n
not_o only_o the_o first_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o all_o the_o successor_n of_o peter_n in_o that_o see_v speak_v with_o one_o consent_n for_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n even_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n rainoldes_n not_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n such_o as_o 12.1_o the_o apostle_n speak_v off_o to_o the_o hebrew_n but_o such_o a_o cloud_n rather_o as_o 3●_n athanasius_n mean_v who_o when_o julian_n the_o emperor_n have_v send_v man_n of_o arm_n to_o spoil_v he_o of_o his_o life_n and_o the_o faithful_a about_o he_o be_v sorry_a for_o it_o and_o weep_v be_v not_o dismay_v say_v he_o my_o child_n it_o be_v b●t_v a_o small_a cloud_n and_o will_v pass_v over_o quick_o for_o this_o host_n of_o pope_n which_o you_o have_v arm_v against_o we_o may_v be_v sort_v out_o into_o three_o company_n whereof_o the_o first_o front_n be_v the_o name_n of_o they_o who_o live_v three_o hundred_o year_n and_o upwarde_a after_o christ_n but_o the_o name_n only_o for_o the_o writing_n savour_v as_o much_o of_o those_o bishop_n as_o scarecrow_n do_v resemble_v the_o strength_n of_o valiant_a man_n the_o second_o front_n be_v they_o who_o live_v the_o next_o three_o hundred_o year_n or_o there_o about_o and_o the_o weapon_n though_o not_o all_o which_o they_o bear_v be_v their_o own_o but_o those_o which_o be_v their_o own_o be_v not_o long_a enough_o to_o reach_v the_o supremacy_n and_o that_o which_o they_o do_v reach_v they_o be_v to_o weak_a to_o win_v it_o the_o three_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o forlorn_a hope_n the_o pope_n which_o do_v follow_v the_o first_o and_o second_o front_n in_o the_o vawarde_n as_o you_o will_v say_v and_o they_o have_v best_a will_v but_o can_v do_v least_o for_o they_o be_v trouble_v so_o with_o care_n of_o the_o carriage_n and_o their_o whole_a artillery_n of_o decree_n and_o decretal_n and_o extravagants_n be_v so_o dull_a that_o if_o the_o former_a be_v discomfit_v they_o have_v not_o power_n to_o strike_v a_o stroke_n so_o that_o you_o see_v the_o witness_n which_o you_o have_v bring_v yet_o be_v of_o no_o valour_n have_v you_o any_o better_a hart._n nay_o stay_v i_o pray_v a_o little_a and_o look_v ere_o you_o leap_v soft_a fire_n make_v sweet_a malt_n your_o answer_n to_o the_o pope_n who_o autority_n i_o cite_v do_v stand_v on_o three_o point_n according_a to_o three_o company_n of_o they_o as_o you_o sort_v they_o the_o first_o you_o say_v be_v counterfeit_v and_o most_o unlike_a those_o bishop_n who_o name_n they_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o next_o avouch_v not_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n though_o they_o avouch_v more_o than_o be_v true_a through_o affection_n the_o last_o through_o a_o regard_n of_o their_o own_o commodity_n have_v speak_v for_o themselves_o and_o be_v unfit_a to_o witness_v in_o their_o own_o matter_n be_v not_o this_o your_o meaning_n rainoldes_n yes_o but_o that_o which_o you_o apply_v to_o the_o last_o sort_n that_o they_o be_v unfit_a to_o witn●●●●●o_v their_o own_o matter_n i_o mean_v it_o of_o the_o second_o too_o and_o if_o i_o think_v that_o the_o first_o which_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v counterfeit_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o three_o have_v be_v counterfeit_v and_o coin_v by_o some_o ambitious_a pope_n himself_o i_o will_v use_v the_o same_o exception_n to_o they_o also_o but_o in_o very_a truth_n i_o be_o not_o of_o opinion_n that_o any_o pope_n himself_o do_v coin_n they_o it_o be_v some_o cook_n rather_o or_o horsekeeper_n of_o the_o pope_n if_o i_o can_v guess_v aught_o by_o the_o style_n and_o latin_n hart._n i_o perceive_v that_o all_o which_o you_o have_v to_o say_v against_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o first_o sort_n be_v that_o which_o your_o 7._o century_n of_o meydenburg_n have_v say_v for_o this_o be_v their_o reason_n and_o they_o stand_v much_o upon_o it_o that_o the_o style_n be_v bad_a and_o the_o latin_a barbarous_a which_o disproof_n be_v foolish_a and_o of_o no_o force_n as_o father_n 2._o turrian_n show_v in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o those_o epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n against_o the_o century_n for_o in_o style_n and_o latin_n they_o may_v speak_v rude_o both_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o in_o thing_n pertain_v to_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o even_o the_o simple_a may_v understand_v they_o and_o lest_o they_o shall_v seem_v by_o choice_n of_o word_n to_o hunt_v for_o praise_n and_o vain_a glory_n yea_o whereas_o the_o century_n in_o this_o point_n of_o style_n do_v note_v the_o likeness_n of_o it_o too_o as_o if_o that_o be_v a_o special_a mark_n to_o prove_v they_o counterfeit_n therein_o they_o have_v betray_v most_o notorious_a folly_n for_o the_o style_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v a_o certain_a token_n of_o the_o right_a autour_fw-fr chief_o in_o some_o man_n writing_n whereby_o we_o use_v often_o to_o try_v and_o discern_v a_o true_a book_n from_o a_o forge_a as_o learned_a man_n have_v do_v in_o austin_n jerom_n ambrose_n cyprian_n tertullian_n and_o other_o but_o herein_o the_o trial_n be_v the_o unlikeness_n of_o the_o style_n between_o a_o autour_n own_o work_n and_o a_o bastard_n father_v on_o he_o which_o trial_n can_v not_o be_v have_v in_o those_o epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o be_v deny_v by_o the_o century_n because_o we_o have_v nothing_o write_v by_o those_o pope_n but_o only_o those_o epistle_n now_o see_v the_o blindness_n of_o heretic_n when_o they_o can_v not_o disprove_v they_o by_o unlikeness_n of_o style_n they_o say_v that_o the_o likeness_n of_o the_o style_n disprove_v they_o which_o be_v most_o ridiculous_a rainoldes_n as_o father_n turrian_n dream_v and_o as_o it_o be_v wont_a to_o fall_v out_o in_o dream_n that_o sundry_a point_n of_o they_o be_v contrary_a one_o to_o another_o and_o yet_o i_o know_v not_o how_o the_o dreamer_n imagine_v that_o all_o do_v cleave_v together_o well_o so_o fare_v it_o with_o turrian_n in_o his_o discourse_n touch_v the_o style_n against_o the_o century_n for_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n on_o the_o which_o 1_o he_o say_v that_o common_o the_o style_n be_v a_o sure_a token_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o touchstone_n whereby_o we_o may_v discern_v true_a book_n from_o forg●●●_n hart._n because_o that_o the_o style_n sometime_o be_v so_o peculiar_a to_o his_o own_o autour_fw-fr that_o his_o work_n may_v thereby_o easy_o be_v know_v even_o by_o a_o man_n of_o mean_a judgement_n as_o in_o tertullian_n apuleius_n pliny_n suetonius_n and_o other_o such_o not_o to_o reckon_v up_o all_o rainoldes_n why_o may_v not_o a_o other_o man_n style_n be_v so_o like_a to_o tertullians_n or_o any_o such_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o discern_v between_o they_o hart._n it_o may_v be_v perhaps_o but_o that_o be_v rare_a and_o hard_a and_o therefore_o the_o learned_a man_n who_o you_o mention_v 4._o sixtus_n senensis_n affirm_v that_o of_o all_o the_o token_n and_o conjecture_n by_o which_o the_o right_a work_n of_o autour_n may_v be_v know_v from_o counterfeit_n and_o forge_a the_o diversity_n of_o style_n do_v seem_v to_o be_v most_o sure_a and_o evident_a for_o though_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o every_o crafty_a coosiner_n to_o take_v upon_o himself_o the_o country_n and_o kindred_n and_o time_n of_o any_o autour_fw-fr and_o follow_v his_o point_n of_o doctrine_n too_o yet_o there_o be_v nothing_o hard_a than_o to_o counterfeit_v a_o other_o man_n style_n by_o the_o style_n say_v he_o i_o mean_v not_o that_o outward_a skin_n of_o the_o word_n but_o the_o shape_n of_o the_o oration_n the_o frame_n of_o the_o speech_n the_o join_n and_o continual_a order_n of_o the_o part_n the_o form_n of_o elocution_n the_o figure_n of_o speak_v the_o art_n of_o dispose_v the_o method_n of_o handle_v &_o other_o thing_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o every_o well_o speak_v autour_fw-fr for_o as_o every_o man_n have_v a_o peculiar_a feature_n of_o body_n to_o himself_o and_o a_o peculiar_a countenance_n and_o a_o peculiar_a voice_n and_o a_o peculiar_a natural_a coolour_n and_o other_o several_a mark_n whereby_o he_o do_v differ_v from_o other_o man_n and_o be_v unlike_o they_o so_o all_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n have_v certain_a property_n peculiar_a to_o themselves_o which_o never_o do_v agree_v or_o seldom_o to_o any_o other_o such_o as_o be_v a_o gorgeous_a show_n in_o antiochus_n a_o exquisite_a diligence_n of_o speech_n in_o basil_n a_o tragical_a loftiness_n in_o gregory_n nazianzene_n a_o clean_a and_o unforced_a elegancy_n in_o chrysostome_n a_o singular_a pure_a facility_n in_o cyprian_a a_o frenchlike_a stateliness_n of_o utterance_n in_o hilary_n a_o grave_n and_o sharp_a copiousness_n of_o brief_a say_n in_o ambrose_n in_o jerom_n a_o flourish_a variety_n of_o thing_n &_o word_n in_o austin_n clause_n end_v like_a and_o member_n fall_v
of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o i_o show_v which_o the_o jew_n must_v not_o behold_v they_o may_v behold_v his_o body_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o do_v so_o rainoldes_n but_o the_o holy_a apostle_n himself_o do_v understand_v it_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v offer_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o that_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o word_n he_o add_v to_o show_v his_o meaning_n touch_v the_o jew_n and_o the_o altar_n 13.11_o for_o say_v he_o the_o body_n of_o those_o beast_n who_o blood_n be_v bring_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n by_o the_o high_a priest_n for_o sin_n be_v burn_v without_o the_o camp_n therefore_o even_o jesus_n that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v the_o people_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n suffer_v without_o the_o gate_n which_o word_n be_v somewhat_o dark_a but_o they_o will_v be_v plain_a if_o we_o consider_v both_o the_o thing_n that_o the_o apostle_n will_v prove_v and_o the_o reason_n by_o which_o he_o prove_v it_o the_o thing_n that_o he_o will_v prove_v be_v that_o the_o jew_n can_v not_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o the_o redemption_n which_o he_o purchase_v with_o his_o precious_a blood_n if_o they_o still_o retain_v the_o ceremonial_a worship_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n the_o reason_n by_o which_o he_o prove_v it_o be_v a_o ordinance_n of_o god_n in_o a_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n appoint_v by_o the_o law_n to_o be_v offer_v for_o sin_n which_o sacrifice_n shadow_v christ_n and_o teach_v this_o doctrine_n for_o whereas_o 7.6_o the_o priest_n who_o serve_v the_o tabernacle_n in_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n have_v a_o part_n of_o other_o sacrifice_n and_o offering_n and_o do_v eat_v of_o they_o 16.15_o there_o be_v certain_a beast_n command_v to_o be_v offer_v for_o sin_n in_o special_a sort_n and_o their_o blood_n to_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n 6.30_o who_o body_n may_v not_o be_v eat_v but_o must_v be_v burn_v without_o the_o camp_n now_o by_o these_o sacrifice_n offer_v so_o for_o sin_n our_o only_a sovereign_a sacrifice_n jesus_n christ_n be_v figure_v who_o 9.12_o enter_v by_o his_o blood_n into_o the_o holy_a place_n 2.2_o to_o cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n and_o 19.20_o his_o body_n be_v crucify_v without_o the_o gate_n that_o be_v the_o gate_n of_o the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o they_o who_o keep_v the_o priestly_a rite_n of_o moses_n law_n can_v not_o 6.51_o eat_v of_o he_o that_o by_o his_o death_n they_o may_v live_v for_o none_o shall_v live_v by_o he_o who_o seek_v to_o be_v save_v by_o the_o law_n as_o it_o be_v write_v 5.1_o if_o you_o be_v circumcise_v christ_n shall_v profit_v you_o nothing_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o exhort_v the_o hebrew_n ●_o to_o establish_v their_o heart_n with_o grace_n that_o teach_v they_o to_o serve_v the_o lord_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n after_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n not_o with_o meat_n that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n a_o part_n whereof_o be_v the_o difference_n between_o unclean_a and_o clean_a in_o meat_n do_v move_v they_o to_o it_o with_o this_o reason_n that_o 10._o if_o they_o serve_v the_o tabernacle_n and_o stick_v unto_o the_o rite_n of_o the_o jewish_a priesthood_n their_o soul_n shall_v have_v no_o part_n of_o the_o food_n of_o our_o sacrifice_n no_o fruit_n of_o christ_n death_n for_o 11._o as_o the_o body_n of_o those_o beast_n which_o be_v offer_v for_o sin_n and_o their_o blood_n bring_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n by_o the_o high_a priest_n may_v not_o be_v eat_v by_o the_o priest_n but_o be_v burn_v without_o the_o camp_n 12._o so_o neither_o may_v the_o keeper_n of_o the_o priestly_a ceremony_n have_v life_n by_o feed_v upon_o christ_n who_o to_o show_v this_o mystery_n do_v suffer_v death_n without_o the_o gate_n when_o he_o shed_v his_o blood_n to_o cleanse_v the_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n and_o thus_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o text_n itself_o that_o the_o name_n of_o altar_n betoken_v the_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v to_o say_v christ_n crucify_v not_o as_o his_o death_n be_v show_v forth_o in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o as_o he_o do_v suffer_v death_n without_o the_o gate_n whereby_o you_o may_v perceive_v first_o the_o folly_n of_o your_o rhemist_n about_o the_o greek_a word_n as_o also_o the_o hebrew_n that_o it_o signify_v proper_o a_o altar_n to_o sacrifice_v on_o as_o though_o it_o may_v not_o therefore_o be_v use_v figurative_o where_o yet_o themselves_o must_v needs_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v so_o too_o next_o the_o weakness_n of_o your_o reason_n who_o thereof_o do_v gather_v that_o by_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o that_o word_n import_v in_o the_o apostle_n be_v mean_v the_o clean_a offering_n of_o which_o the_o prophet_n speak_v for_o the_o clean_a offering_n of_o which_o the_o prophet_n speak_v be_v offer_v 1.11_o in_o every_o place_n the_o sacrifice_n mean_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o one_o place_n only_o 13.12_o without_o the_o gate_n wherefore_o the_o name_n of_o altar_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n do_v neither_o signify_v a_o massing-altar_n nor_o prove_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o massingpriest_n hart._n that_o which_o you_o touch_v as_o foolish_o note_v by_o our_o 13.10_o rhemist_n about_o the_o greek_a and_o hebrew_n word_n be_v note_v very_o true_o for_o you_o can_v not_o deny_v yourself_o but_o that_o it_o signify_v proper_o a_o altar_n a_o material_a altar_n to_o sacrifice_v upon_o and_o not_o a_o metaphorical_a and_o spiritual_a altar_n whereby_o as_o they_o conclude_v that_o we_o have_v not_o a_o common_a table_n or_o profane_a communion_n board_n to_o eat_v mere_a bread_n upon_o but_o a_o very_a altar_n in_o the_o proper_a sense_n to_o sacrifice_v christ_n body_n upon_o so_o for_o proof_n hereof_o they_o add_v that_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o say_a body_n sacrifice_v it_o be_v also_o call_v a_o altar_n of_o the_o father_n even_o of_o gorgonia_n gregory_n nazianzene_n deus_fw-la chrysostome_n 25._o socrates_n 21._o augustine_n and_o matt._n theophylact_n and_o when_o it_o be_v call_v a_o table_n it_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o heavenly_a food_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n receive_v rainoldes_n the_o note_n of_o your_o rhemist_n about_o the_o greek_a &_o hebrew_n word_n be_v true_a i_o grant_v yet_o foolish_a too_o though_o true_a in_o the_o thing_n yet_o foolish_a in_o the_o drift_n for_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o where_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o have_v a_o altar_n it_o may_v be_v think_v he_o mean_v not_o that_o word_n spiritual_o or_o in_o a_o figurative_a sense_n as_o we_o expound_v it_o of_o christ_n but_o material_o of_o a_o very_a altar_n such_o as_o be_v use_v in_o their_o mass_n they_o say_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d greek_a word_n as_o also_o the_o 〈◊〉_d hebrew_n answer_v thereunto_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n signify_v proper_o a_o altar_n to_o sacrifice_v on_o and_o not_o a_o metaphorical_a and_o spiritual_a altar_n which_o speech_n how_o dull_a it_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o point_n to_o which_o they_o apply_v it_o i_o will_v make_v you_o see_v by_o a_o example_n of_o their_o own_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o gospel_n teach_v of_o himself_o that_o he_o be_v 32._o the_o true_a bread_n 33._o which_o give_v life_n unto_o the_o world_n 50._o the_o bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n that_o whosoever_o eat_v of_o it_o shall_v not_o die_v 51._o if_o any_o man_n eat_v of_o this_o bread_n he_o shall_v live_v for_o ever_o your_o 6.32_o rhemist_n do_v note_v hereon_o that_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n incarnate_a be_v mean_v under_o the_o metaphor_n of_o bread_n and_o our_o belief_n in_o he_o be_v signify_v by_o eat_v wherein_o they_o say_v well_o but_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v tell_v they_o that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d greek_a word_n as_o also_o the_o 〈◊〉_d hebrew_n answer_v thereunto_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v proper_o signify_v bread_n which_o we_o eat_v bodily_a and_o not_o a_o metaphorical_a or_o spiritual_a bread_n be_v not_o this_o as_o true_a a_o speech_n as_o their_o own_o yet_o how_o wise_a to_o the_o purpose_n who_o be_v so_o blind_a that_o see_v not_o yea_o to_o go_v no_o far_o than_o the_o very_a word_n whereof_o by_o their_o hebrew_a and_o greek_a they_o seek_v advantage_n themselves_o upon_o that_o place_n of_o 6.9_o john_n that_o he_o see_v under_o the_o altar_n the_o soul_n of_o they_o who_o be_v kill_v for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v affirm_v express_o that_o christ_n be_v this_o altar_n christ_n say_v they_o as_o man_n no_o doubt_n be_v this_o altar_n they_o mean_v it_o i_o hope_v in_o a_o metaphorical_a or_o other_o figurative_a speech_n for_o they_o will_v not_o make_v he_o by_o transubstantiation_n to_o be_v a_o altar_n proper_o yet_o here_o it_o be_v as_o
true_a that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d greek_a word_n as_o also_o the_o 〈◊〉_d hebrew_n answer_v thereunto_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n signify_v proper_o a_o altar_n to_o sacrifice_v on_o and_o not_o a_o metaphorical_a or_o spiritual_a altar_n and_o if_o it_o be_v as_o much_o for_o the_o advantage_n of_o their_o cause_n to_o prove_v that_o mass_n be_v say_v in_o heaven_n as_o that_o in_o earth_n and_o that_o christ_n be_v proper_o bread_n without_o a_o figure_n as_o that_o bread_n be_v proper_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o text_n of_o the_o scripture_n where_o christ_n be_v call_v bread_n yea_o the_o true_a bread_n will_v prove_v the_o one_o clear_o as_o they_o can_v fit_v it_o with_o this_o note_n and_o the_o word_n altar_n will_v put_v the_o other_o out_o of_o controversy_n chief_o if_o that_o be_v note_v withal_o that_o 8.3_o a_o angel_n stand_v before_o the_o altar_n have_v a_o golden_a censer_n though_o 5._o other_o there_o also_o affirm_v the_o altar_n to_o be_v christ._n but_o it_o fare_v with_o your_o rhemist_n as_o it_o be_v wont_v with_o 13.10_o false_a prophet_n mass_n one_o build_v up_o a_o muddy_a wall_n and_o testament_n other_o daub_v it_o over_o with_o a_o rot_a plaster_n and_o when_o a_o storm_n come_v the_o wall_n fall_v and_o plaster_n with_o it_o for_o though_o as_o they_o lay_v it_o on_o it_o seem_v handsome_a that_o word_n signify_v proper_o the_o natural_a thing_n which_o they_o be_v use_v to_o signify_v and_o not_o metaphorical_a or_o spiritual_a thing_n yet_o if_o it_o be_v open_v that_o hereby_o be_v mean_v that_o word_n may_v not_o be_v use_v by_o metaphor_n or_o other_o figure_n to_o signify_v those_o thing_n which_o proper_o they_o do_v not_o signify_v the_o boy_n in_o grammar_n school_n who_o know_v what_o a_o metaphor_n be_v will_v laugh_v at_o it_o wherefore_o this_o plaster_n will_v not_o help_v the_o weakness_n of_o your_o muddy_a wall_n i_o mean_v of_o the_o conclusion_n which_o you_o will_v prove_v by_o it_o and_o do_v infer_v upon_o it_o that_o we_o have_v a_o altar_n in_o the_o proper_a sense_n to_o sacrifice_v christ_n body_n upon_o in_o the_o daub_v up_o whereof_o yet_o your_o plasterer_n do_v show_v a_o piece_n of_o great_a art_n partly_o by_o draw_v we_o into_o hatred_n who_o have_v not_o popish_a altar_n but_o communion_n table_n partly_o by_o wind_v the_o name_n of_o father_n in_o as_o if_o they_o make_v for_o you_o against_o us._n both_o with_o skill_n and_o cunning_n but_o more_o of_o sophistry_n than_o divinity_n for_o that_o which_o the_o scripture_n do_v call_v 10.21_o the_o lord_n table_n because_o it_o be_v ordain_v for_o 11.20_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n 11._o the_o father_n also_o call_v it_o a_o table_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o heavenly_a banquet_n that_o be_v serve_v upon_o it_o and_o this_o in_o proper_a sense_n marry_o by_o a_o figure_n of_o speech_n by_o which_o the_o name_n of_o thing_n that_o be_v like_o one_o a_o other_o in_o some_o quality_n be_v give_v one_o unto_o a_o other_o as_o 34.23_o christ_n be_v call_v david_n 4.5_o john_n baptist_n elias_n 17.5_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n babylon_n 62.9_o the_o church_n of_o god_n jerusalem_n the_o father_n for_o resemblance_n of_o the_o minister_n and_o sacrament_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o they_o in_o the_o old_a be_v wont_a to_o give_v the_o name_n as_o of_o 1st_a priest_n and_o levite_n to_o pastor_n and_o deacon_n so_o of_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o of_o a_o altar_n to_z the_o lord_n table_z for_o these_o thing_n be_v link_a by_o nature_n in_o relation_n and_o mutual_a dependence_n as_o i_o may_v say_v one_o of_o a_o other_o 〈◊〉_d the_o altar_n 〈◊〉_d the_o sacrifice_n and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o sacrificer_n who_o serve_v the_o altar_n that_o be_v priest_n and_o levite_n wherefore_o if_o the_o father_n mean_v a_o very_a altar_n in_o the_o proper_a sense_n to_o sacrifice_v christ_n body_n upon_o then_o must_v they_o mean_v also_o dioscorum_n the_o levitical_a priesthood_n to_o serve_v in_o sacrifice_v of_o it_o but_o 7.11_o the_o leviticall_a priesthood_n be_v go_v and_o they_o know_v it_o nether_a do_v they_o call_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o but_o by_o a_o figure_n your_o rhemist_n therefore_o do_v abuse_v they_o in_o prove_v as_o by_o they_o that_o the_o communion_n table_n be_v call_v a_o altar_n proper_o but_o we_o of_o the_o other_o side_n they_o do_v abuse_v more_o by_o set_v a_o altar_n against_o a_o common_a table_n in_o such_o sort_n of_o speech_n as_o if_o we_o who_o church_n have_v not_o a_o very_a altar_n to_o kill_v our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o sacrifice_v he_o upon_o it_o have_v but_o a_o common_a table_n and_o profane_a communion_n board_n to_o eat_v mere_a bread_n upon_o a_o feat_n to_o make_v we_o odious_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n who_o you_o will_v persuade_v that_o we_o discern_v not_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o your_o privy_a slander_n do_v we_o open_a injury_n for_o we_o have_v not_o a_o common_a but_o a_o holy_a table_n as_o both_o communion_n we_o call_v it_o and_o esteem_v it_o not_o a_o profane_a communion_n board_n but_o a_o sanctify_a to_o eat_v not_o mere_a bread_n but_o the_o lord_n supper_n wherein_o we_o receive_v the_o bread_n of_o thanksgiving_n and_o the_o cup_n of_o blessing_n as_o 11.23_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o quadrage_n the_o father_n teach_v us._n yourselves_o be_v guilty_a rather_o of_o feed_n man_n with_o mere_a bread_n 2._o who_o do_v take_v away_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o christian_a people_n and_o in_o steed_n of_o the_o bless_a bread_n of_o the_o sacrament_n do_v give_v in_o your_o mass_n mere_a bread_n in_o deed_n by_o your_o own_o confession_n 53._o the_o common_a bread_n that_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o vicarius_fw-la holybread_n i_o will_v to_o god_n m._n hart_n you_o will_v think_v with_o yourself_o even_o in_o your_o bed_n as_o 4.4_o the_o prophet_n speak_v and_o consider_v more_o deep_o both_o the_o wicked_a abuse_n wherewith_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v profane_v in_o your_o unholy_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o the_o treacherous_a mean_n whereby_o your_o master_n and_o fellow_n of_o the_o college_n of_o rheims_n do_v seek_v to_o maintain_v it_o who_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o scripture_n either_o of_o the_o altar_n or_o of_o the_o clean_a offering_n the_o principal_a place_n whereon_o their_o show_n stand_v they_o go_v about_o to_o breed_v a_o good_a opinion_n of_o it_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o simple_a partly_o by_o discredit_v we_o with_o false_a reproach_n partly_o by_o abuse_v the_o credit_n of_o the_o father_n which_o two_o kind_n of_o proof_n do_v bear_v the_o great_a sway_n through_o all_o your_o rhemish_a annotation_n hart._n we_o do_v not_o abuse_v the_o credit_n of_o the_o father_n to_o persuade_v a_o error_n but_o as_o we_o endeavour_n to_o follow_v they_o in_o truth_n so_o allege_v we_o they_o to_o prove_v the_o truth_n by_o they_o and_o howsoever_o you_o avoid_v the_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n where_o it_o be_v say_v we_o have_v a_o altar_n the_o prophecy_n of_o malachi_n that_o in_o every_o place_n there_o be_v sacrifice_v and_o offer_v a_o clean_a offering_n to_o god_n must_v needs_o belong_v to_o the_o very_a and_o outward_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n not_o to_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n which_o because_o that_o reverend_a man_n d_o allen_n who_o treatise_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v such_o a_o moat_n in_o your_o eye_n 5._o do_v prove_v by_o six_o reason_n bona_fw-la the_o pith_n whereof_o he_o great_o praise_v i_o will_v bring_v they_o forth_o in_o his_o own_o word_n that_o you_o may_v yield_v the_o rather_o to_o they_o first_o therefore_o the_o word_n to_o sacrifice_v and_o to_o offer_v be_v use_v by_o itself_o d●minuente_fw-la without_o a_o term_n abridge_n it_o be_v take_v in_o the_o scripture_n always_o proper_o for_o the_o act_n of_o outward_a sacrifice_n but_o when_o it_o be_v say_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o cry_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o contrition_n and_o the_o like_a it_o be_v perceive_v easy_o by_o the_o word_n annex_v that_o they_o be_v take_v improper_o second_o this_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o which_o the_o prophet_n speak_v be_v one_o but_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n there_o be_v so_o many_o as_o there_o be_v good_a work_n of_o christian_a religion_n three_o this_o be_v the_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n and_o the_o gentile_n not_o of_o the_o jew_n but_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n of_o prayer_n and_o work_n be_v common_a to_o the_o jew_n with_o us._n four_o
mention_v blessing_n twice_o and_o that_o out_o of_o s._n paul_n whereby_o the_o first_o point_n which_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n name_v be_v approve_v to_o weet_v of_o mystical_a blessing_n rainoldes_n true_a if_o the_o council_n have_v mean_v by_o benedicere_fw-la that_o word_n as_o the_o scripture_n do_v either_o 26.26_o the_o give_v of_o thanks_n unto_o god_n or_o 10.16_o the_o sanctify_a of_o creature_n unto_o holy_a use_n or_o 6.23_o pray_v for_o the_o people_n that_o the_o lord_n will_v bless_v they_o but_o if_o they_o mean_v the_o make_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n as_o it_o be_v plain_a they_o do_v both_o by_o the_o matter_n which_o that_o chapter_n handle_v touch_v visible_a sign_n and_o by_o their_o intent_n to_o confirm_v the_o ceremony_n which_o protestant_n condemn_v and_o by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o be_v as_o full_a of_o cross_n as_o exorcism_n a_o conjurer_n circle_n and_o the_o word_n missae_fw-la he_o bless_v be_v take_v so_o there_o with_o a_o cross_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o it_o then_o your_o mystical_a blessing_n of_o the_o trent-fathers_n be_v neither_o mean_v by_o s._n paul_n nor_o mention_v by_o s._n austin_n hart._n yes_o s._n austin_n seem_v to_o mean●_n there_o by_o blessing_n ●he_v 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n on_o the_o sacrament_n for_o in_o a_o ●●rmon_n of_o his_o touch_v the_o same_o matter_n he_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v consecrate_v with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n rainoldes_n in_o what_o sermon_n be_v that_o hart._n among_o his_o sermon_n de_fw-fr tempore_fw-la tempore_fw-la the_o hundred_o eighti_v and_o one_o rainoldes_n that_o be_v among_o his_o sermon_n but_o none_o of_o his_o sermon_n for_o it_o use_v the_o word_n of_o gregory_n a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o live_v long_o after_o and_o mo_z thing_n it_o have_v by_o which_o it_o be_v certain_a as_o 10._o your_o divine_n of_o lovan_n note_n that_o it_o be_v not_o s._n augustine_n howbeit_o neither_o he_o that_o do_v compile_v that_o sermon_n whosoever_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o consecrate_v be_v of_o s._n paul_n ordinance_n or_o a_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v the_o point_n that_o you_o have_v to_o prove_v by_o s._n austin_n and_o if_o you_o prove_v it_o not_o you_o do_v not_o clear_v the_o trent-councell_n for_o i_o grant_v that_o 11●_n in_o s._n augustine_n time_n yea_o deus_fw-la before_o it_o the_o christian_n as_o they_o use_v to_o sign_n their_o forehead_n with_o the_o cross_n in_o token_n that_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a of_o christ_n crucify_v who_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n reproach_v for_o the_o death_n which_o he_o suffer_v on_o the_o cross_n so_o they_o bring_v the_o rite_n thereof_o into_o the_o sacrament_n and_o use_v both_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o cross_v in_o other_o thing_n of_o god_n also_o but_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v because_o the_o christian_n do_v it_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v it_o to_o be_v do_v hart._n but_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o they_o do_v and_o certain_o militis_fw-la tertullian_n a_o very_a ancient_a writer_n do_v express_o say_v that_o christian_n have_v it_o by_o tradition_n rainoldes_n to_o sign_n their_o forehead_n with_o a_o cross_n but_o not_o to_o sign_n the_o sacrament_n tertullian_n be_v so_o ancient_a that_o he_o write_v it_o seem_v before_o that_o custom_n grow_v beside_o you_o mistake_v he_o if_o you_o think_v he_o mean_v by_o the_o name_n of_o tradition_n a_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o what_o soever_o custom_n not_o write_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v keep_v by_o the_o faithful_a that_o because_o it_o be_v deliver_v by_o some_o body_n from_o who_o the_o use_n thereof_o be_v take_v he_o say_v it_o come_v in_o by_o tradition_n in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o affirm_v it_o both_o of_o judaeo●_n jewish_a custom_n before_o the_o apostle_n as_o that_o their_o woman_n cover_v their_o face_n with_o veil_n and_o of_o christian_n after_o which_o yet_o be_v not_o apostolic_a as_o praegustamus_fw-la the_o dip_v thri●e_o of_o they_o who_o be_v baptize_v and_o feed_v they_o with_o milk_n and_o honey_n and_o which_o plain_o show_v he_o mean_v not_o the_o apostle_n in_o it_o fideli_fw-la every_o faithful_a man_n may_v by_o his_o judgement_n devise_v such_o rite_n upon_o reason_n neither_o must_v we_o respect_v the_o autour_n but_o the_o authority_n &_o censetur_fw-la regard_v the_o thing_n deliver_v whosoever_o do_v deliver_v it_o wherefore_o the_o tradition_n that_o tertullian_n speak_v of_o be_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o your_o trent-councell_n for_o neither_o do_v he_o mention_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n to_o have_v be_v use_v in_o consecration_n which_o he_o will_v of_o likelihood_n if_o then_o it_o have_v be_v use_v nor_o say_v he_o that_o it_o come_v by_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o sort_n as_o it_o be_v use_v but_o he_o know_v not_o from_o who_o hart._n though_o none_o of_o th●_n father_n perhaps_o bear_v witness_n of_o it_o yet_o if_o the_o council_n mean_v it_o by_o mystical_a blessing_n they_o know_v that_o the_o church_n have_v it_o from_o the_o apostle_n for_o else_o they_o will_v not_o vouch_v it_o rainoldes_n then_o you_o be_v best_a to_o say_v that_o they_o learn_v it_o from_o heaven_n by_o revelation_n 10._o as_o the_o anabaptist_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v their_o mystery_n for_o else_o they_o can_v not_o know_v it_o hart._n you_o confess_v yourself_o that_o s._n 118._o austin_n and_o other_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v use_v it_o in_o celebrate_v of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n i_o marvel_v why_o you_o like_v it_o not_o in_o our_o mass_n since_o we_o do_v therein_o but_o as_o the_o father_n do_v rainoldes_n nay_o i_o confess_v not_o that_o for_o your_o massing-priest_n do_v trick_n i●_n as_o a_o 10._o sorcerer_n all_o in_o mathematical_a or_o rather_o magical_a number_n communione_n by_o cross_v thrice_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n both_o together_o and_o thrice_o again_o both_o then_o once_o each_o in_o several_a and_o once_o again_o each_o and_o again_o thri●e_a &_o once_o and_o again_o once_o and_o thrice_o with_o a_o cross_n on_o himself_o betwixt_o hitherto_o with_o his_o hand_n after_o with_o the_o host_n he_o cross_v thrice_o the_o chalice_n and_o twice_o to_o make_v up_o five_o between_o his_o breast_n and_o the_o chalice_n next_o with_o the_o pa●en_o he_o ●●osseth_v once_o himself_o and_o the_o chalice_n thri●e_fw-mi witha_fw-mi piece_n of_o the_o host_n and_o once_o himself_o again_o with_o the_o host_n over_o the_o paten_a and_o last_o once_o himself_o again_o with_o the_o chalice_n all_o these_o in_o the_o canon_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o mass_n beside_o mis●am_fw-la a_o number_n mo_z before_o he_o come_v to_o the_o canon_n but_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o namely_o s._n austin_n be_v far_o from_o such_o mystical_a toyi●ges_n with_o the_o sacrament_n pope_n hildebrande_n magine_v that_o so_o many_o cros●es_n though_o yet_o not_o so_o many_o as_o you_o be_v grow_v to_o now_o but_o 14._o the_o tradition_n of_o pope_n hildebrand_n that_o crossinge_n must_v come_v in_o by_o one_o or_o three_o or_o five_o obseruamus_fw-la still_o in_o a_o odd_a number_n after_o gaudet_fw-la the_o rule_n of_o 8._o old_a sorcerer_n be_v a_o profounder_n rite_n of_o mystical_a blessing_n then_o either_o s._n austin_n or_o other_o ancient_a father_n use_v hart._n pope_n gregory_n the_o seven_o name_v hildebrand_n before_o his_o popedom_n keep_v not_o those_o odd_a number_n for_o any_o magical_a fancy_n though_o hildebrandi_fw-la benno_n charge_v he_o false_o with_o that_o devilish_a art_n but_o to_o note_v a_o mystery_n for_o 14._o he_o say_v that_o one_o or_o three_o or_o five_o cross_n must_v therefore_o still_o be_v make_v because_o by_o one_o and_o three_o we_o signify_v one_o god_n in_o trinity_n by_o five_o the_o five_o part_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n rainoldes_n as_o who_o say_v 48._o magician_n have_v not_o the_o like_a mystery_n in_o their_o odd_a number_n too_o and_o if_o pope_n hildebrand_n will_v have_v have_v prae●at_n a_o circle_n make_v about_o the_o priest_n to_o keep_v the_o devil_n from_o he_o while_o he_o be_v say_v mass_n there_o be_v a_o mystery_n for_o that_o also_o to_o weet_v that_o it_o signify_v god_n who_o nether_a have_v beginning_n nor_o end_n hart._n nay_o the_o circle_n be_v a_o ceremony_n proper_a to_o conjurer_n and_o he_o will_v never_o have_v admit_v it_o but_o in_o that_o he_o keep_v a_o odd_a number_n always_o in_o make_v of_o cross_n upon_o the_o oblation_n he_o do_v as_o he_o have_v learn_v in_o rome_n where_o he_o be_v bring_v up_o under_o ten_o of_o his_o predecessor_n and_o that_o which_o he_o learn_v there_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n rainoldes_n so_o 14._o his_o scholar_n
keep_v the_o name_n so_o we_o keep_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o name_n too_o and_o therefore_o the_o thing_n itself_o with_o s._n paul_n but_o turn_v it_o to_o your_o mass_n and_o it_o be_v very_o true_a for_o in_o s._n ambroses_n time_n the_o christian_a people_n have_v public_a prayer_n in_o many_o church_n daily_o jovinianum_fw-la do_v therewithal_o daily_o receive_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n now_o because_o sundry_a be_v at_o other_o part_n of_o divine_a service_n for_o who_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n as_o chryso●t_n novice_n in_o the_o faith_n who_o be_v not_o yet_o baptize_v and_o domin_n such_o as_o church_n discipline_n remove_v from_o the_o communion_n therefore_o they_o be_v wont_a after_o prayer_n make_v and_o scripture_n read_v and_o teach_v fideles_fw-la to_o dimisse_fw-la the_o rest_n who_o may_v not_o communicate_v the_o faithful_a only_o stay_v to_o receve_v together_o and_o this_o dimission_n of_o they_o be_v note_v by_o the_o word_n 18._o missa_fw-la 18._o use_v for_o missio_fw-la that_o be_v a_o send_v away_o or_o licens_v to_o depart_v whence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o very_a name_n of_o missa_fw-la be_v give_v to_o that_o part_n of_o the_o service_n and_o they_o be_v say_v missam_fw-la facere_fw-la who_o celebrate_v the_o communion_n as_o s._n ambrose_n do_v wherefore_o though_o your_o sacrifice_n keep_v the_o name_n of_o mass_n that_o s._n ambrose_n use_v yet_o do_v it_o not_o keep_v the_o thing_n mean_v thereby_o for_o nether_a send_v you_o they_o away_o who_o receive_v not_o and_o many_o a_o mass_n be_v say_v that_o have_v no_o communicant_n hart._n but_o we_o wish_v as_o 6._o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v declare_v that_o adstantes_fw-la the_o faithful_a who_o stand_v by_o at_o mass_n will_v communicate_v wherefore_o if_o they_o do_v not_o it_o be_v through_o their_o own_o default_n and_o not_o through_o we_o rainoldes_n but_o it_o be_v your_o fault_n that_o you_o send_v not_o they_o away_o from_o the_o communion_n who_o communicate_v not_o and_o herein_o your_o council_n do_v vary_v from_o s._n ambrose_n and_o other_o ancient_a father_n that_o it_o allow_v non-communicants_a to_o be_v stander_n by_o for_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n yea_o in_o s._n gregory_n time_n who_o for_o august_n name_v mass_n too_o be_v make_v a_o mass-priest_n by_o your_o doctor_n 2d_o the_o deacon_n be_v accustom_v to_o bid_v they_o exibant_fw-la depart_v who_o do_v not_o communicate_v wherefore_o see_v that_o they_o mean_v the_o communion_n by_o the_o name_n of_o mass_n and_o term_v it_o so_o because_o they_o send_v away_o the_o non-communicants_a from_o it_o you_o who_o do_v not_o so_o may_v see_v how_o fond_a a_o reason_n d._n allen_n make_v for_o your_o mass_n and_o masseprieste_n when_o he_o show_v ambrose_n gregory_n and_o quadragesima_fw-la leo_n to_o have_v use_v that_o name_n then_o which_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o in_o deed_n more_o against_o he_o for_o if_o the_o name_n open_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n as_o aristotle_n show_v then_o be_v not_o your_o mass_n the_o mass_n of_o the_o father_n because_o it_o be_v not_o missa_fw-la that_o be_v a_o dimiss_a and_o send_v away_o of_o they_o who_o receive_v not_o harte_n nay_o it_o be_v not_o only_o the_o name_n of_o the_o mass_n whereon_o he_o rely_v but_o the_o thing_n itself_o for_o who_o know_v not_o say_v he_o that_o s._n august_n gregory_n the_o great_a be_v a_o mass-priest_n who_o have_v the_o very_a word_n the_o manner_n and_o the_o part_n thereof_o so_o express_o in_o his_o epistle_n who_o 29._o send_v all_o holy_a furniture_n and_o ornament_n for_o the_o same_o to_o our_o bless_a apostle_n rainoldes_n what_o to_o s._n paul_n 11.13_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o gentile_n hart._n i_o mean_v to_o s._n austin_n the_o apostle_n of_o the_o englishman_n rainoldes_n i_o know_v no_o such_o apostle_n if_o you_o mean_v of_o that_o sort_n of_o which_o 1.1_o christ_n give_v apostle_n as_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o word_n our_o bless_a apostle_n shall_v import_n but_o the_o ornament_n and_o furniture_n which_o s._n gregory_n send_v to_o austin_n the_o moonke_v be_v not_o massing-vestiment_n no_o more_o than_o the_o vessel_n and_o clothes_n that_o you_o mention_v before_o out_o of_o optatus_n and_o other_o ancient_a father_n which_o serve_v for_o the_o communion_n as_o for_o the_o manner_n and_o part_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o he_o have_v you_o say_v in_o his_o epistle_n so_o express_o all_o that_o which_o he_o have_v be_v 63._o that_o there_o be_v say_v halleluia_n praise_v you_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o clergy_n say_v eleeson_fw-mi lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o the_o people_n answer_v they_o with_o the_o same_o word_n and_o eleeson_fw-mi christ_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o be_v say_v in_o like_a sort_n and_o 56._o the_o lord_n prayer_n with_o the_o prayer_n call_v the_o canon_n be_v say_v over_o the_o offering_n and_o nobis_fw-la after_o consecration_n the_o communion_n be_v minister_v now_o compare_v the_o manner_n and_o part_n of_o your_o mass_n with_o this_o of_o s._n gregory_n and_o they_o be_v as_o like_v it_o as_o be_v a_o *_o ape_n unto_o a_o man_n for_o in_o outward_a gesture_n and_o shape_n of_o face_n &_o body_n that_o be_v in_o show_n of_o action_n and_o form_n of_o word_n &_o prayer_n you_o resemble_v it_o but_o the_o soul_n &_o reason_n as_o it_o be_v of_o it_o which_o be_v that_o the_o people_n do_v pray_v with_o the_o pastor_n nor_o only_o pray_v together_o but_o communicate_v too_o that_o your_o mass_n have_v not_o hart._n they_o pray_v and_o communicate_v both_o in_o affection_n though_o they_o receyve_v not_o always_o the_o communion_n bodily_a nor_o understand_v the_o prayer_n rainoldes_n but_o to_o communicate_v be_v to_o 26._o eat_v and_o 2d_o drink_v which_o the_o people_n do_v in_o s._n gregory_n time_n and_o they_o understand_v the_o prayer_n which_o be_v make_v that_o they_o may_v 14.16_o say_v amen_o thereto_o now_o the_o priest_n have_v swallow_a up_o their_o right_n in_o the_o one_o and_o the_o clerk_n in_o the_o other_o hart._n but_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a part_n we_o have_v in_o like_a sort_n as_o s._n gregory_n have_v and_o therein_o sacramentor_n the_o worship_n of_o saint_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a where_o of_o there_o be_v no_o shadow_n at_o all_o in_o your_o communion_n neither_o can_v you_o abide_v they_o the_o great_a wrong_v you_o do_v both_o to_o he_o and_o we_o to_o make_v as_o though_o you_o follow_v that_o which_o he_o practise_v and_o to_o say_v that_o our_o mass_n be_v no_o lyke_a he_o then_o be_v a_o ape_n unto_o a_o man_n rainoldes_n we_o follow_v he_o in_o that_o wherein_o he_o follow_v christ_n 11.1_o and_o the_o follower_n of_o christ._n 63._o himself_o bear_v witness_v that_o consecrarent_fw-la the_o apostle_n neither_o use_v nor_o posuerat_fw-la make_v that_o canon_n but_o i_o know_v not_o what_o scholar_n wherefore_o though_o a_o scholar_n present_v concedas_fw-la the_o merit_n and_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n before_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n desire_v help_n for_o their_o sake_n and_o pray_v for_o the_o faithful_a who_o do_v rest_n in_o christ_n that_o they_o may_v have_v pacis_fw-la a_o place_n of_o cool_a peace_n and_o light_n yet_o because_o our_o 23.10_o master_n teach_v that_o 19.30_o himself_o alone_o wrought_v all_o righteousness_n 9.12_o that_o we_o may_v find_v favour_n through_o his_o desert_n and_o intercession_n and_o show_v that_o 14.13_o the_o dead_a who_o die_v in_o he_o be_v bless_v and_o rest_n from_o their_o labour_n 1.12_o in_o light_n 57.2_o peace_n and_o 1●_n comfort_n we_o follow_v not_o s._n gregory_n canon_n in_o those_o point_n but_o answer_v he_o with_o christ_n 19.8_o from_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v not_o so_o and_o you_o who_o think_v your_o mass_n better_o than_o a_o ape_n in_o respect_n of_o he_o because_o it_o resemble_v he_o in_o the_o canon_n the_o chief_a part_n of_o it_o may_v know_v that_o it_o resemble_v his_o therein_o no_o better_a than_o do_v a_o ape_n a_o man_n when_o he_o swear_v by_o the_o cross_n of_o his_o ten_o bone_n for_o the_o canon_n also_o beside_o that_o the_o people_n do_v hear_v &_o understand_v it_o record_v sumpserimus_fw-la their_o receyve_n of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n 19_o as_o do_v the_o other_o prayer_n too_o after_o the_o communion_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o soul_n and_o reason_n of_o it_o your_o mass_n which_o have_v it_o not_o be_v but_o a_o apish_a counterfeit_n of_o he_o for_o all_o the_o canon_n nay_o it_o be_v in_o deed_n so_o much_o the_o more_o apish_a because_o it_o have_v his_o word_n and_o not_o the_o meaning_n of_o they_o hart._n you_o grate_n on_o the_o communion_n still_o as_o if_o the_o canon_n and_o all_o s._n
most_o for_o his_o apology_n the_o prayer_n which_o 〈◊〉_d the_o minister_n for_o so_o eusebius_n term_v they_o do_v offer_v unto_o god_n may_v well_o be_v understand_v by_o those_o sacrifice_n too_o but_o if_o he_o mean_v only_o their_o offering_n of_o the_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n death_n in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o that_o which_o ensue_v of_o mystical_a consecration_n may_v seem_v to_o import_v yet_o himself_n declare_v by_o the_o word_n unblooddy_a that_o he_o call_v they_o sacrifice_n not_o proper_o but_o by_o a_o figure_n as_o mean_v not_o that_o christ_n be_v put_v to_o death_n there_o in_o deed_n but_o in_o a_o mystery_n to_o be_v short_a he_o and_o all_o the_o other_o father_n both_o greek_a and_o latin_a be_v so_o full_o and_o plain_o of_o one_o mind_n in_o this_o point_n that_o the_o 12._o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n in_o his_o abridgement_n of_o divinity_n gather_v out_o of_o they_o propose_v this_o question_n immolatio_fw-la whether_o that_o which_o the_o priest_n do_v execute_v be_v call_v a_o sacrifice_n proper_o resolve_v that_o it_o be_v not_o but_o that_o which_o be_v offer_v and_o consecrate_v by_o the_o priest_n be_v call_v a_o sacrifice_n say_v he_o and_o a_o offering_n crucis_fw-la because_o it_o be_v a_o remembrance_n and_o representation_n of_o the_o true_a sacrifice_n and_o the_o holy_a offering_n make_v on_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o cross_n as_o he_o proove_v by_o the_o father_n wherefore_o since_o the_o sacrifice_n offer_v in_o the_o mass_n be_v sacrificium_fw-la a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrifice_n as_o you_o define_v it_o and_o that_o of_o the_o father_n be_v not_o a_o true_a sacrifice_n but_o call_v so_o improper_o it_o remain_v to_o be_v conclude_v that_o the_o father_n nether_a say_v mass_n 1._o nor_o be_v masspriest_n and_o so_o to_o make_v a_o end_n with_o that_o which_o you_o begin_v with_o the_o cause_n be_v just_a and_o holy_a why_o we_o call_v presbyteros_fw-la not_o priest_n but_o elder_n for_o since_o the_o name_n of_o priest_n have_v relation_n to_o sacrifice_v &_o man_n by_o the_o sacrifice_n understand_v your_o mass_n and_o your_o mass_n be_v a_o monster_n of_o abomination_n profane_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n condemn_v by_o the_o scripture_n unknowen_a to_o the_o father_n detestable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o godly_a the_o charge_n of_o the_o lord_n 19.14_o not_o to_o lay_v a_o stumble_a block_n before_o the_o blind_a may_v have_v remove_v 2.16_o that_o name_n from_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n yea_o although_o they_o have_v be_v ordain_v to_o sacrifice_n much_o more_o since_o they_o be_v not_o but_o as_o other_o christian_n the_o name_n of_o elder_n therefore_o express_v that_o word_n whereby_o the_o scripture_n call_v they_o as_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o seniore_fw-la your_o own_o authentical_a translate_n it_o so_o we_o can_v not_o but_o allow_v it_o chief_o since_o the_o very_a necessity_n of_o open_v our_o meaning_n unto_o other_o which_o be_v the_o end_n of_o language_n require_v different_a word_n for_o the_o different_a thing_n of_o presbyter_n and_o sacerdos_fw-la for_o how_o will_v you_o translate_v that_o say_n of_o s._n 10._o austin_n that_o s._n johns_n word_n 20.6_o they_o shall_v be_v priest_n of_o god_n &_o of_o christ_n be_v mean_v of_o all_o christian_n non_fw-fr de_fw-fr solis_fw-la episcopis_fw-la &_o presbyteris_fw-la qui_fw-la propriè_fw-la iam_fw-la vocantur_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la that_o be_v as_o we_o translate_v not_o of_o bishop_n and_o elder_n only_o which_o now_o be_v call_v peculiarly_a priest_n in_o the_o church_n but_o how_o will_v you_o translate_v it_o hart._n there_o be_v a_o defect_n in_o our_o english_a tongue_n that_o we_o can_v not_o translate_v it_o so_o perspicuous_o as_o it_o be_v in_o latin_a because_o we_o have_v but_o one_o word_n for_o presbyter_n and_o sacerdos_fw-la rainoldes_n then_o you_o shall_v not_o play_v the_o dog_n in_o the_o manger_n neither_o yourselves_o mend_v the_o defect_n of_o our_o tongue_n nor_o suffer_v we_o to_o mend_v they_o for_o if_o a_o man_n translate_v it_o as_o your_o 20.6_o rhemist_n do_v not_o of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n only_o which_o be_v proper_o proper_o now_o in_o the_o church_n call_v priest_n how_o shall_v the_o english_a reader_n understand_v his_o meaning_n which_o priest_n be_v call_v priest_n and_o whether_o bishop_n be_v priest_n too_o nay_o to_o come_v to_o that_o which_o must_v needs_o enforce_v you_o to_o translate_v sacerdos_fw-la otherwise_o than_o presbyter_n s._n 10._o austin_n have_v bring_v against_o julian_n a_o heretic_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n irenaeus_n cyprian_n reticius_n olympius_n hilary_n ambrose_n innocentius_n nazianzene_n basil_n &_o chrysostome_n do_v name_v they_o sacerdotes_fw-la that_o be_v as_o you_o translate_v it_o priest_n be_v it_o not_o hart._n yes_o we_o have_v no_o other_o english_a for_o sacerdos_fw-la rainoldes_n where_o s._n austin_n add_v then_o touch_v jerom_n that_o nether_a he_o must_v be_v contemn_v because_o he_o be_v presbyter_n what_o here_o shall_v presbyter_n be_v will_v you_o make_v s._n augustine_n speech_n so_o unsavoury_a as_o to_o tell_v the_o heretic_n that_o he_o ought_v to_o reverence_n irenaeus_n cyprian_n ambrose_n and_o the_o rest_n because_o they_o be_v priest_n and_o not_o contemn_v jerom_n because_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n hart._n nay_o i_o will_v translate_v here_o presbyter_n a_o priest_n but_o for_o sacerdotes_fw-la i_o will_v say_v bishop_n for_o that_o be_v s._n augustine_n meaning_n in_o these_o place_n where_o he_o do_v name_v they_o sacerdotes_fw-la rainoldes_n so_o 6._o your_o translator_n do_v but_o the_o word_n bishop_n be_v our_o english_a of_o episcopus_fw-la and_o what_o if_o episcopus_fw-la chance_n to_o come_v in_o too_o with_o sacerdos_fw-la and_o presbyter_n how_o will_v you_o express_v they_o as_o where_o in_o 1._o the_o canon_n collect_v by_o isidore_n touch_v the_o order_n of_o keep_v counsel_n he_o say_v that_o sacerdotes_fw-la first_o must_v enter_v in_o and_o after_o they_o presbyteri_fw-la your_o conc._n lawyer_n note_v on_o it_o vide_fw-la ut_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la vocet_fw-la episcopos_fw-la veteri_fw-la more_fw-it quem_fw-la ignorantes_fw-la plerique_fw-la presbyteros_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la appellari_fw-la promiscuè_fw-fr stuliè_fw-fr opinantur_fw-la wherein_o if_o you_o translate_v sacerdotes_fw-la bishop_n and_o presbyteros_fw-la priest_n then_o your_o lawyer_n say_v which_o be_v a_o wise_a speech_n that_o isidore_n call_v bishop_n bishop_n after_o the_o old_a manner_n which_o many_o not_o know_v do_v foolish_o think_v that_o priest_n be_v call_v bishop_n indifferent_o hart._n such_o sentence_n can_v be_v well_o express_v in_o english_a but_o the_o latin_a word_n must_v be_v keep_v in_o they_o rainoldes_n but_o it_o be_v behooveful_a for_o our_o english_a man_n to_o have_v they_o in_o english_a that_o they_o may_v know_v your_o latin_a abuse_n of_o rome_n for_o this_o be_v mean_v thereby_o that_o the_o ancient_a writer_n be_v wont_a to_o note_v bishop_n by_o the_o name_n of_o priest_n which_o many_o not_o know_v do_v foolish_o think_v that_o the_o name_n of_o priest_n be_v use_v indifferent_o for_o the_o same_o that_o elder_n a_o lesson_n for_o your_o rhemist_n who_o make_v they_o all_o one_o although_o not_o of_o foolishness_n so_o much_o as_o of_o fraud_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o presbyteri_fw-la elder_n that_o be_v to_o say_v minister_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n may_v be_v think_v sacerdotes_fw-la priest_n that_o be_v to_o say_v minister_n ordain_v sacrifica●e_n to_o sacrifice_n as_o your_o missae_fw-la masspriest_n be_v for_o colour_n and_o maintenance_n of_o the_o which_o error_n the_o countenance_n of_o proof_n that_o you_o pretend_v out_o of_o the_o father_n be_v the_o less_o by_o thus_o much_o that_o episcopo_fw-la they_o be_v accustom_v to_o geve_v the_o name_n of_o priest_n not_o general_o to_o elder_n but_o to_o bishop_n only_o wherefore_o to_o avoid_v confusion_n of_o thing_n which_o the_o confusion_n of_o word_n may_v engender_v in_o that_o we_o be_v to_o treat_v off_o i_o will_v by_o your_o leave_n call_v presbyter_n a_o elder_a as_o our_o translation_n do_v that_o i_o may_v distinguish_v it_o from_o the_o name_n of_o priest_n both_o as_o it_o be_v use_v by_o you_o for_o a_o mass-priest_n and_o as_o it_o be_v use_v by_o the_o father_n for_o a_o bishop_n so_o to_o come_v at_o length_n back_o again_o to_o that_o which_o i_o be_v in_o hand_n with_o of_o the_o second_o sort_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n division_n that_o when_o they_o be_v grow_v to_o their_o fat_a plight_n they_o be_v but_o archbishop_n of_o a_o princely_a diocese_n not_o universal_a pope_n and_o patriarch_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o elder_n as_o i_o say_v ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o every_o church_n through_o every_o city_n choose_v one_o among_o themselves_o who_o they_o call_v bishop_n to_o be_v the_o precedent_n of_o their_o company_n for_o the_o better_a
of_o the_o right_a way_n it_o be_v the_o death_n not_o of_o captive_n but_o of_o carthaginian_n not_o opinion_n of_o man_n but_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v hazard_v not_o life_n not_o health_n not_o wealth_n and_o possession_n but_o the_o inheritance_n of_o heaven_n and_o salvation_n come_v into_o controversy_n lend_v i_o therefore_o i_o pray_v you_o the_o presence_n of_o your_o mind_n and_o patience_n of_o your_o ear_n to_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v speak_v remember_v that_o we_o have_v not_o toy_n as_o on_o a_o stage_n but_o serious_a thing_n in_o hand_n and_o because_o we_o handle_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o lord_n i_o pray_v he_o to_o sanctify_v with_o his_o holy_a spirit_n our_o tongue_n and_o your_o ear_n and_o the_o mind_n of_o all_o that_o neither_o we_o dispute_v to_o any_o other_o end_n then_o to_o bring_v forth_o the_o truth_n into_o light_n by_o conference_n of_o reason_n neither_o you_o in_o hear_v have_v any_o other_o mind_n then_o to_o believe_v the_o truth_n when_o it_o shall_v be_v bring_v forth_o and_o prove_v to_o begin_v therefore_o with_o the_o first_o conclusion_n conclusion_n and_o so_o run_v over_o the_o rest_n brief_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v the_o church_n all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n god_n the_o father_n of_o eternal_a goodness_n and_o mercy_n do_v choose_v of_o his_o free_a and_o singular_a favour_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v lay_v a_o great_a number_n of_o man_n who_o he_o will_v endue_v with_o everlasting_a life_n and_o make_v they_o heir_n of_o heavenly_a glory_n now_o that_o the_o choose_v may_v come_v to_o this_o inheritance_n they_o be_v to_o be_v make_v the_o child_n of_o god_n by_o adoption_n through_o jesus_n christ._n for_o this_o have_v ever_o be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o salvation_n in_o consideration_n whereof_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v of_o the_o company_n of_o such_o as_o god_n have_v choose_v term_v they_o 16._o sometime_o the_o child_n of_o god_n by_o adoption_n not_o by_o nature_n yet_o 17._o fellow_n heir_n with_o christ_n sometime_o 19.7_o the_o wife_n of_o the_o lamb_n which_o be_v endow_v with_o all_o the_o wealth_n of_o her_o husband_n some_o time_n 5.23_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n of_o who_o as_o of_o a_o head_n they_o be_v govern_v and_o move_v sometime_o 22.2_o the_o citizen_n of_o heaven_n appoint_v to_o be_v inhabitant_n of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n final_o christ_n himself_o to_o omit_v the_o rest_n do_v call_v they_o his_o church_n 1●_n which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o this_o church_n then_o even_o the_o company_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o choose_v the_o child_n of_o god_n the_o wife_n of_o the_o lamb_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o citizen_n of_o heaven_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n as_o it_o be_v choose_v and_o ordain_v by_o god_n to_o life_n everlasting_a so_o have_v it_o be_v always_o teach_v by_o his_o word_n the_o way_n of_o salvation_n whereby_o it_o may_v come_v to_o the_o possession_n of_o that_o life_n his_o word_n be_v utter_v in_o old_a time_n sundry_a way_n be_v publish_v at_o length_n in_o writing_n and_o so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o holy_a write_n of_o god_n do_v teach_v the_o church_n such_o thing_n as_o must_v be_v know_v for_o the_o obtain_n of_o salvation_n for_o who_o can_v reveal_v the_o way_n to_o obtain_v the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o god_n alone_o and_o he_o revel_v it_o to_o his_o church_n as_o first_o without_o writing_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o seem_v best_a to_o his_o wisdom_n so_o afterward_o in_o writing_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o servant_n inspire_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n without_o writing_n to_z adam_z and_o from_o adam_n time_n till_o moses_n in_o writing_n to_o moses_n and_o from_o moses_n forward_o till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n wherefore_o in_o these_o writing_n give_v out_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o pen_v by_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n which_o writing_n s._n 3.26_o paul_n call_v scripture_n by_o a_o excellency_n as_o you_o will_v say_v the_o writing_n which_o surpass_v all_o other_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n whereby_o we_o come_v to_o heaven_n the_o light_n of_o our_o soul_n which_o shine_v in_o this_o world_n darkness_n the_o food_n of_o life_n which_o nourish_v we_o to_o grow_v in_o christ_n be_v deliver_v to_o the_o church_n for_o cléere_a proof_n whereof_o let_v we_o divide_v the_o church_n into_o the_o old_a and_o the_o new_a the_o old_a before_o christ_n the_o new_a since_o christ_n be_v bear_v the_o prophet_n teach_v the_o old_a church_n the_o way_n of_o salvation_n the_o apostle_n with_o the_o prophet_n together_o teach_v the_o new_a more_o plenteous_o and_o full_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v comprise_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o scripture_n therefore_o teach_v the_o church_n whatsoever_o be_v behooveful_a to_o salvation_n for_o the_o church_n be_v the_o company_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o choose_v now_o they_o who_o be_v elect_v be_v 19_o of_o the_o household_n of_o god_n and_o they_o of_o his_o household_n 20._o be_v build_v on_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n but_o this_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n be_v the_o doctrine_n touch_v christ_n which_o they_o preach_v to_o the_o church_n and_o that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o preach_v be_v enroll_v in_o scripture_n wherefore_o the_o scripture_n teach_v the_o church_n all_o thing_n that_o for_o salvation_n be_v requisite_a to_o be_v know_v moses_n to_o begin_v with_o the_o first_o of_o the_o prophet_n have_v publish_v the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o the_o israelite_n 12.32_o give_v ear_n say_v he_o o_o israel_n to_o the_o ordinance_n which_o i_o teach_v you_o shall_v not_o add_v to_o the_o word_n which_o i_o command_v you_o nor_o shall_v you_o take_v from_o it_o but_o whatsoever_o i_o command_v you_o that_o shall_v you_o observe_v to_o do_v that_o you_o may_v keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n now_o the_o israelite_n be_v to_o labour_v for_o the_o obtain_n of_o salvation_n but_o they_o may_v do_v nothing_o which_o be_v not_o prescribe_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n therefore_o the_o write_v law_n of_o god_n do_v deliver_v whatsoever_o be_v needful_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o israelite_n and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o the_o israelite_n be_v the_o church_n the_o law_n than_o do_v teach_v whatsoever_o be_v needful_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o church_n the_o prophet_n who_o follow_v be_v expounder_n of_o the_o law_n that_o as_o they_o be_v inspire_v with_o the_o same_o spirit_n by_o which_o moses_n write_v so_o they_o neither_o add_v any_o thing_n to_o his_o law_n nor_o take_v from_o it_o only_o they_o unfold_v it_o to_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o church_n as_o it_o seem_v best_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n i_o let_v pass_v david_n in_o who_o there_o be_v not_o many_o mo_z psal._n psalm_n than_o there_o be_v testimony_n of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o law_n esay_n examine_v both_o the_o faith_n and_o life_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o people_n by_o 8.20_o the_o law_n and_o testimony_n idolater_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o lord_n in_o jeremie_n for_o do_v in_o their_o sacrifice_n 19.5_o thing_n which_o he_o command_v not_o in_o malachi_n the_o last_o prophet_n god_n will_v his_o people_n to_o 4._o remember_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n that_o he_o as_o a_o schoolmaster_n may_v lead_v they_o to_o christ_n who_o forerunner_n shall_v be_v elias_n but_o these_o thing_n can_v not_o have_v be_v speak_v by_o god_n or_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n unless_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n have_v show_v the_o whole_a and_o perfect_a way_n of_o salvation_n the_o law_n of_o moses_n therefore_o do_v whole_o and_o perfect_o instruct_v the_o church_n therein_o which_o if_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n do_v perform_v alone_o much_o more_o all_o the_o prophet_n together_o with_o moses_n how_o may_v it_o then_o be_v doubt_v but_o the_o old_a church_n be_v teach_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n the_o way_n of_o salvation_n whole_o and_o perfect_o s._n john_n to_o pass_v over_o from_o the_o prophet_n to_o the_o apostle_n after_o that_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n be_v rise_v not_o to_o abolish_v the_o law_n but_o to_o fulfil_v it_o and_o to_o bring_v a_o bright_a and_o cléere_a light_n into_o the_o world_n declare_v in_o the_o gospel_n how_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n do_v the_o office_n of_o our_o sovereign_a prophet_n priest_n and_o king_n accomplish_v our_o salvation_n by_o teach_v by_o die_v by_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a our_o salvation_n then_o be_v full_o wrought_v by_o christ._n but_o
but_o earthly_a not_o spiritual_a but_o like_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n present_o to_o come_v not_o after_o to_o be_v look_v for_o proper_a to_o israel_n not_o common_a to_o all_o nation_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o promise_n yea_o that_o more_o be_v when_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o great_a measure_n from_o heaven_n 2.14_o peter_n go_v not_o right_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n 22.8_o john_n will_v have_v worship_v a_o angel_n once_o or_o twice_o 11.2_o the_o apostle_n &_o brethren_n who_o be_v in_o judaea_n think_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v preach_v to_o the_o gentile_n but_o yet_o all_o these_o error_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v curable_a for_o both_o they_o return_v to_o christ_n when_o he_o be_v rise_v again_o from_o death_n to_o life_n and_o first_o themselves_o acknowledge_v than_o they_o teach_v other_o the_o state_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o peter_n be_v reprove_v by_o paul_n do_v yield_v unto_o he_o and_o john_n stay_v himself_o upon_o the_o angel_n admonition_n and_o the_o apostle_n with_o the_o brethren_n be_v teach_v the_o truth_n be_v glad_a that_o god_n have_v grant_v to_o the_o gentile_n also_o repentance_n unto_o life_n wherein_o that_o be_v perform_v which_o be_v promise_v by_o christ_n when_o peter_n have_v make_v that_o worthy_a profession_n of_o faith_n he_o say_v unto_o he_o 16.18_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o on_o this_o stone_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n 〈◊〉_d shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o the_o church_n they_o shall_v not_o prevail_v they_o 10.4_o shall_v be_v of_o strength_n then_o against_o the_o church_n but_o they_o shall_v not_o prevail_v by_o strength_n for_o the_o elect_a and_o choose_v of_o god_n may_v take_v a_o fall_n but_o fall_v a_o way_n they_o can_v not_o perhaps_o they_o build_v stubble_n but_o they_o build_v on_o the_o foundation_n and_o the_o foundation_n be_v christ_n jesus_n from_o who_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v pluck_v away_o for_o as_o fabius_n say_v in_o 22._o livy_n that_o right_o do_v faint_a often_o as_o be_v not_o able_a well_o to_o prove_v the_o truth_n but_o it_o never_o die_v so_o man_n who_o cleave_v to_o right_v and_o truth_n be_v oft_o assault_v but_o they_o be_v never_o conquer_v the_o 15.4_o sheep_n of_o christ_n may_v go_v astray_o in_o the_o wilderness_n but_o 10.28_o they_o can_v not_o perish_v the_o 15.12_o prodigal_a son_n may_v go_v away_o from_o his_o father_n but_o he_o shall_v come_v again_o the_o 22.32_o faith_n of_o peter_n himself_o do_v sow_v as_o you_o will_v say_v but_o it_o fail_v not_o he_o be_v turn_v away_o a_o while_n from_o the_o lord_n who_o he_o deny_v too_o but_o he_o be_v turn_v again_o unto_o he_o to_o conclude_v the_o faithful_a be_v sore_o press_v often_o by_o many_o enemy_n and_o mighty_a but_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v suppress_v 1_o often_o have_v they_o assault_v i_o from_o my_o youth_n up_o may_v israel_n now_o say_v often_o have_v they_o assault_v i_o from_o my_o youth_n up_o but_o they_o have_v not_o prevail_v against_o i_o it_o be_v certain_a therefore_o that_o the_o elect_a and_o choose_v though_o they_o be_v make_v the_o child_n of_o god_n by_o adoption_n yet_o be_v subject_a to_o error_n howbeit_o of_o the_o other_o side_n they_o be_v subject_a so_o that_o they_o be_v free_v from_o the_o gilt_n of_o error_n by_o christ_n and_o be_v accept_v as_o holy_a of_o god_n because_o they_o be_v in_o part_n holy_a 4_o i_o be_o black_a o_o you_o daughter_n of_o jerusalem_n say_v the_o spouse_n yet_o i_o be_o comely_a as_o the_o tent_n of_o kedar_n yet_o as_o the_o hang_n of_o solomon_n yea_o far_a the_o bridegroom_n say_v that_o 14._o she_o be_v fair_a nay_o that_o be_v more_o 7._o the_o fair_a but_o the_o fair_a of_o woman_n not_o simple_o the_o fair_a as_o bernard_n well_o note_v but_o in_o comparison_n of_o woman_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o earthly_a creature_n to_o teach_v the_o church_n thereby_o lest_o she_o wax_v proud_a that_o 38._o as_o long_o as_o she_o live_v in_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o body_n she_o go_v on_o towards_o but_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v to_o the_o perfection_n of_o fairness_n and_o therefore_o that_o she_o be_v om●imodo_fw-la not_o i_o use_v s._n bernardes_n word_n fair_a altogether_o though_o she_o be_v therefore_o commend_v for_o her_o fairness_n because_o she_o walk_v after_o the_o spirit_n not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o here_o peradventure_o some_o man_n will_v object_v a_o argument_n which_o papist_n be_v ever_o hammer_v on_o that_o 1●_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v promise_v and_o give_v by_o christ_n to_o the_o elect_a and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o ghost_n or_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n and_o truth_n whereof_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v well_o gather_v that_o they_o can_v neither_o err_v in_o doctrine_n nor_o in_o manner_n to_o this_o if_o it_o be_v object_v thus_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v fill_v with_o the_o unmeasurable_a abundance_n of_o his_o grace_n none_o but_o christ_n only_o 1●_n of_o who_o fullness_n we_o all_o receive_v christ_n in_o deed_n have_v give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o elect_a but_o he_o have_v give_v it_o 34_o by_o measure_n as_o i_o may_v say_v with_o john_n not_o to_o this_o effect_n that_o they_o may_v not_o err_v but_o that_o they_o may_v not_o err_v to_o death_n for_o it_o be_v a_o sentence_n not_o only_o prove_v by_o philosopher_n but_o also_o know_v to_o simple_a man_n by_o common_a experience_n that_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v receive_v of_o a_o other_o it_o be_v receive_v according_a to_o the_o capacity_n of_o that_o which_o receive_v it_o we_o receive_v therefore_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_a to_o the_o simple_a capacity_n of_o man_n weakness_n not_o to_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n spirit_n there_o be_v water_n enough_o in_o the_o main_a sea_n to_o quench_v the_o rage_a flame_n that_o waste_v a_o whole_a town_n but_o a_o small_a dish_n can_v not_o contain_v enough_o to_o assuage_v the_o fire_n that_o burk_v one_o house_n man_n who_o be_v beget_v 5.3_o in_o the_o image_n and_o likeness_n of_o their_o father_n adam_n do_v flame_n &_o burn_v as_o the_o 4._o prophet_n speak_v though_o they_o be_v 3.5_o bear_v anew_o of_o water_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n yet_o the_o water_n of_o the_o spirit_n d●●th_v not_o quite_o put_v out_o all_o spark_n of_o fault_n and_o oversight_n for_o there_o remain_v 5.17_o a_o strife_n between_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o flesh_n even_o in_o the_o godly_a and_o the_o remnant_n of_o the_o flesh_n stick_v in_o the_o hart_n and_o mind_n both_o and_o 13.12_o now_o while_o we_o live_v we_o know_v but_o in_o part_n and_o 12.9_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v perfect_v in_o weakness_n and_o jeremie_n pray_v 17.14_o heal_v i_o o_o lord_n and_o i_o shall_v be_v heal_v and_o paul_n acknowledge_v of_o himself_o that_o 3.12_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o perfitte_a though_o labour_v hard_o towards_o the_o mark_n and_o james_n say_v general_o concern_v the_o faithful_a 3.2_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o all_o offend_v and_o our_o saviour_n witness_v that_o 13.10_o he_o which_o be_v wash_v have_v need_n to_o wash_v his_o foot_n wherefore_o though_o the_o choose_a and_o elect_a of_o god_n be_v renew_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o cleanse_v so_o in_o this_o life_n from_o all_o perverseness_n of_o hart_n and_o blindness_n of_o mind_n that_o they_o can_v neither_o swarm_n from_o do_v their_o duty_n nor_o be_v deeeive_v in_o judgement_n for_o 13.16_o the_o holy_a ghost_n no_o doubt_n as_o christ_n promise_v do_v lead_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n yea_o i_o say_v far_o into_o all_o holiness_n but_o so_o as_o s._n paul_n profess_v to_o the_o ephesian_n that_o 27._o he_o show_v they_o all_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n now_o he_o show_v they_o all_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n not_o absolute_o and_o simple_o but_o 20._o so_o far_o as_o be_v profitable_a for_o they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n therefore_o do_v lighten_v the_o mind_n and_o sancti●●e_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o choose_v so_o far_o as_o be_v expedient_a for_o their_o salvation_n but_o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o we_o to_o err_v in_o some_o thing_n that_o we_o may_v geve_v all_o 1.17_o glory_n unto_o god_n alone_o that_o know_v what_o we_o be_v 11.20_o we_o be_v not_o high_a mind_v that_o we_o may_v be_v teach_v to_o 6.2_o bear_v each_o other_o burden_n that_o we_o may_v 2.12_o work_v forth_o our_o own_o salvation_n with_o fear_n that_o we_o may_v learn_v with_o paul_n that_o 12.9_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o that_o we_o may_v 9.24_o sharpen_v our_o
trust_n in_o he_o 7.47_o stir_v up_o our_o love_n towards_o he_o and_o pray_v unto_o he_o hearty_o 17.5_o increase_v our_o faith_n 11.4_o forgeve_v our_o sin_n in_o a_o word_n that_o we_o may_v run_v the_o whole_a race_n of_o our_o life_n with_o great_a steadfastness_n and_o constancy_n then_o since_o these_o thing_n be_v thus_o it_o be_v to_o be_v conclude_v that_o the_o godly_a be_v lead_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n into_o all_o truth_n and_o holiness_n even_o to_o salvation_n but_o to_o this_o salvation_n they_o be_v so_o lead_v that_o they_o be_v not_o free_a from_o all_o spot_n and_o wrinkle_n either_o of_o manner_n or_o of_o doctrine_n touch_v which_o point_n on_o the_o one_o side_n in_o respect_n of_o manner_n dei_fw-la sebastian_z castellio_n have_v err_v very_o shameful_o hold_v this_o heretical_a opinion_n among_o other_o that_o the_o regenerate_v be_v able_a to_o perform_v the_o law_n of_o god_n perfect_o which_o thing_n it_o be_v blasphemous_a to_o affirm_v of_o any_o but_o of_o christ_n only_o on_o the_o other_o side_n in_o respect_n of_o doctrine_n 3._o hosius_n the_o cardinal_n have_v overshoot_v himself_o as_o foul_o say_v that_o every_o one_o of_o the_o elect_n may_v err_v as_o by_o s._n cyprian_n example_n he_o show_v but_o that_o all_o the_o faithful_a gather_v together_o in_o one_o can_v err_v which_o be_v a_o fancy_n of_o a_o man_n that_o will_v build_v castle_n in_o the_o air_n it_o be_v a_o matter_n therefore_o most_o sure_a and_o out_o of_o doubt_n that_o the_o elect_a and_o choose_a may_v err_v as_o in_o manner_n so_o in_o doctrine_n too_o though_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o die_v but_o live_v notwithstanding_o and_o be_v cure_v of_o their_o error_n marry_o that_o they_o who_o be_v not_o choose_v but_o only_o call_v may_v err_v even_o to_o death_n as_o well_o in_o doctrine_n as_o in_o manner_n in_o manner_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o 26.15_o judas_n who_o be_v bring_v through_o covetousness_n to_o betray_v christ_n in_o doctrine_n we_o may_v see_v by_o those_o monstrous_a heretic_n of_o who_o s._n john_n say_v 1●_n they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o us._n wherefore_o since_o both_o the_o choose_a and_o the_o call_v may_v err_v the_o one_o to_o their_o trial_n the_o other_o to_o their_o destruction_n and_o the_o church_n militant_a consist_v of_o none_o but_o of_o the_o call_v and_o the_o choose_a that_o which_o i_o propose_v be_v prove_v sufficient_o that_o the_o militant_a church_n may_v err_v not_o only_o in_o manner_n but_o in_o doctrine_n also_o if_o any_o man_n for_o proof_n thereof_o require_v example_n he_o have_v the_o church_n of_o 1.6_o galatia_n of_o 15.12_o corinth_n of_o 15._o pergamus_n of_o 20._o thyatira_n of_o 2._o sardis_n and_o of_o 15._o la●dicea_n all_o the_o which_o to_o omit_v example_n of_o our_o own_o time_n the_o scripture_n witness_v to_o have_v err_v some_o of_o they_o in_o manner_n some_o in_o doctrine_n some_o in_o both_o yea_o the_o very_a church_n of_o 1.12_o ephesus_n itself_o which_o christ_n show_v to_o john_n in_o the_o figure_n of_o 3.15_o a_o candlestick_n because_o it_o hold_v the_o light_n of_o life_n which_o timothee_n abide_v in_o when_o paul_n write_v unto_o he_o that_o 3.15_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o the_o truth_n even_o this_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v impair_v so_o great_o by_o 4._o leave_v of_o her_o first_o love_n that_o christ_n do_v therefore_o threaten_v she_o 5._o he_o will_v remove_v her_o candlestick_n out_o of_o his_o place_n unless_o she_o repent_v she_o repent_v not_o but_o by_o little_a and_o little_o become_v worse_a &_o worse_a and_o heap_a fault_n upon_o fault_n yea_o many_o fault_n upon_o one_o both_o in_o manner_n and_o doctrine_n therefore_o christ_n remove_v her_o candlestick_n out_o of_o his_o place_n the_o choose_a who_o shine_v with_o the_o light_n of_o faith_n he_o gather_v to_o himself_o the_o call_v who_o hate_v the_o light_n he_o give_v over_o to_o darkness_n &_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n the_o godly_a ●●_o he_o make_v pillar_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o his_o god_n the_o hypocrite_n the_o filth_n of_o the_o temple_n he_o cast_v out_o to_o the_o dunghill_n of_o the_o ungodly_a and_o he_o leave_v the_o city_n of_o ephesus_n desolate_a to_o wicked_a mahomet_n impiety_n now_o that_o may_v befall_v to_o every_o one_o as_o they_o say_v which_o may_v befall_v to_o any_o one_o then_o look_v what_o have_v befall_v to_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n that_o may_v to_o every_o church_n but_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v shake_v first_o and_o craze_a afterward_o quite_o overthrow_v and_o be_v hereft_v of_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n be_v now_o a_o church_n no_o long_o then_o be_v there_o no_o church_n upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n howsoever_o it_o flatter_v itself_o with_o those_o title_n of_o the_o candlestick_n of_o christ_n &_o pillar_n of_o the_o truth_n there_o be_v no_o church_n i_o say_v who_o body_n that_o be_v the_o choose_a may_v not_o be_v overtake_v with_o faintness_n and_o darkness_n who_o dregs_n that_o be_v the_o hypocrite_n may_v not_o be_v consume_v with_o rottenness_n and_o destruction_n final_o who_o whole_a frame_n &_o constitution_n may_v not_o be_v deprive_v both_o of_o strength_n and_o beauty_n i_o know_v that_o the_o papist_n answer_v hereunto_o that_o the_o militant_a church_n may_v err_v for_o the_o flock_n the_o people_n that_o be_v in_o it_o but_o the_o guide_v and_o pastor_n who_o assembly_n be_v call_v the_o church_n by_o christ_n say_v 1●_n tell_v the_o church_n can_v not_o which_o be_v false_a and_o fond_a for_o as_o there_o be_v sheep_n and_o goat_n in_o the_o flock_n so_o the_o pastor_n of_o they_o be_v good_a hirelinge_n or_o thief_n the_o good_a one_o do_v slumber_n sometime_o as_o the_o apostle_n the_o 12._o hirelinge_n fly_v assoon_o as_o the_o wolf_n come_v the_o 10._o thief_n come_v to_o steal_v to_o kill_v and_o to_o destroy_v wherefore_o no_o pastor_n be_v exempt_a from_o danger_n of_o err_a more_o or_o less_o and_o for_o the_o former_a point_n that_o they_o may_v err_v in_o manner_n what_o need_v i_o bring_v apostles_n or_o prophet_n to_o prove_v it_o the_o complaint_n of_o bernard_n be_v fresh_a i_o will_v to_o god_n it_o be_v not_o too_o fresh_a 33._o there_o creep_v a_o owgly_a rot_n at_o this_o present_a through_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n which_o word_n be_v speak_v in_o reproof_n of_o the_o life_n and_o conversation_n of_o the_o prelate_n that_o be_v of_o the_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n do_v show_v that_o not_o a_o common_a disease_n but_o a_o rot_n and_o that_o not_o small_a but_o ugly_a and_o that_o creep_v on_o not_o keep_v at_o a_o stay_n may_v infect_v not_o only_o this_o or_o that_o member_n but_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o pastor_n for_o their_o manner_n now_o that_o they_o may_v also_o be_v oversee_v in_o doctrine_n and_o err_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v plain_o prove_v by_o those_o corinthian_a pastor_n 3.10_o who_o build_v hay_n and_o stubble_n upon_o the_o foundation_n that_o s._n paul_n have_v lay_v by_o they_o of_o who_o s._n peter_n foretell_v that_o 2.1_o there_o shall_v be_v false_a teacher_n in_o the_o new_a church_n as_o in_o the_o old_a there_o be_v false_a prophet_n by_o 22._o samosatenus_fw-la 2._o arius_n &_o 32._o nestorius_n pastor_n of_o famous_a church_n and_o autor_n of_o most_o heinous_a heresy_n yea_o by_o 16._o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n who_o all_o be_v arian_n in_o a_o manner_n when_o there_o be_v scarce_o leave_v a_o few_o catholic_n when_o seleuciae_fw-la the_o whole_a world_n do_v groan_v &_o wonder_n at_o itself_o that_o it_o be_v become_v a_o arian_n but_o the_o papist_n will_v reply_v that_o when_o they_o say_v the_o church_n can_v err_v they_o mean_v the_o church_n in_o that_o sense_n in_o which_o the_o schoolman_n call_v it_o representative_a that_o be_v bishop_n and_o prelate_n represent_v the_o whole_a church_n in_o a_o general_a council_n what_o and_o have_v that_o church_n i_o mean_v a_o general_a council_n this_o privilege_n that_o it_o can_v not_o err_v they_o hold_v so_o in_o deed_n but_o what_o will_v they_o say_v of_o so_o many_o counsel_n of_o the_o arian_n which_o cause_v procopium_n gregory_n nazianzene_n to_o despair_v that_o any_o good_a will_v be_v do_v by_o counsel_n but_o they_o deny_v these_o to_o have_v be_v lawful_a counsel_n what_o will_v they_o answer_v then_o to_o those_o which_o themselves_o confess_v to_o have_v be_v lawful_a the_o council_n of_o 59_o laodicea_n though_o a_o provincial_a council_n yet_o allow_v by_o 1._o a_o general_a do_v set_v down_o the_o same_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o both_o the_o old_a church_n have_v
of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n both_o in_o general_a and_o particular_a conclusion_n the_o roman_a and_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o sundry_a nation_n it_o come_v first_o to_o be_v declare_v what_o be_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n whereof_o we_o profess_v in_o our_o creed_n that_o we_o believe_v it_o and_o hereof_o i_o say_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n be_v the_o whole_a company_n of_o god_n elect_v and_o choose_v which_o be_v term_v a_o church_n that_o be_v a_o company_n ofman_n and_o a_o assembly_n of_o people_n call_v together_o holy_a because_o god_n have_v choose_v this_o company_n and_o sanctify_v it_o to_o himself_o catholic_a for_o that_o it_o consist_v not_o of_o one_o nation_n but_o of_o all_o spread_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o god_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o he_o may_v impart_v the_o riches_n of_o his_o glorious_a grace_n unto_o mankind_n 4●_n do_v choose_v from_o everlasting_a a_o certain_a number_n of_o man_n as_o a_o ●_o peculiar_a people_n 34_o who_o shall_v possess_v with_o he_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n prepare_v for_o they_o from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o although_o this_o people_n be_v sunder_v by_o the_o distance_n of_o place_n and_o time_n for_o the_o several_a person_n and_o member_n thereof_o yet_o have_v he_o join_v and_o knit_v they_o all_o together_o by_o the_o bond_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n into_o the_o fellowship_n of_o one_o body_n and_o a_o civil_a or_o rather_o a_o spiritual_a communion_n as_o it_o be_v into_o one_o city_n the_o name_n of_o which_o city_n be_v 2_o the_o heavenly_a new_a and_o holy_a jerusalem_n the_o city_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o king_n be_v 87.1_o god_n almighty_a who_o found_v establish_v and_o rule_v the_o city_n the_o law_n be_v god_n word_n which_o the_o citizen_n hear_v and_o follow_v as_o 1●_n sheep_n the_o voice_n of_o the_o shepherd_n the_o citizen_n be_v the_o saint_n even_o all_o and_o singular_a holy_a man_n who_o therefore_o be_v call_v 19_o fellow-citizen_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o man_n of_o god_n household_n the_o register_n wherein_o their_o name_n be_v enroll_v be_v call_v 1●_n the_o book_n of_o life_n final_o the_o liberty_n and_o commodity_n which_o they_o enjoy_v be_v most_o ample_a benefit_n both_o of_o this_o life_n and_o of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v to_o wit_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n the_o fountain_n of_o goodness_n the_o treasure_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n the_o peace_n of_o conscience_n the_o gift_n of_o righteousness_n of_o godliness_n of_o holiness_n one_o spirit_n one_o faith_n one_o hope_n of_o our_o call_n and_o sacrament_n which_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o our_o hope_n in_o a_o word_n all_o thing_n which_o be_v expedient_a for_o we_o to_o the_o necessary_a maintenance_n of_o our_o earthly_a life_n and_o after_o this_o life_n the_o inheritance_n of_o life_n eternal_a in_o heaven_n with_o endless_a bliss_n and_o glory_n but_o because_o the_o citizen_n of_o this_o city_n of_o god_n have_v disobey_v &_o rebel_v against_o he_o have_v lose_v their_o freedom_n through_o their_o treason_n and_o be_v put_v thereby_o from_o everlasting_a life_n w●re_o to_o suffer_v death_n in_o the_o chain_n of_o darkness_n god_n the_o father_n of_o infinite_a mercy_n and_o compassion_n do_v send_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n into_o the_o world_n that_o he_o be_v appoint_v king_n of_o god_n city_n shall_v redeem_v the_o citizen_n from_o the_o powerof_o darkness_n out_o of_o the_o thraldom_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o translate_n they_o a_o fresh_a into_o his_o kingdom_n shall_v bless_v they_o and_o endow_v they_o with_o all_o the_o privilege_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o citizen_n of_o god_n and_o so_o it_o please_v he_o though_o we_o have_v play_v the_o traitor_n in_o revolt_n from_o he_o to_o his_o and_o our_o enemy_n yet_o of_o his_o free_a favour_n to_o make_v a_o league_n with_o we_o &_o enter_v into_o covenant_n which_o covenant_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o substance_n yet_o diverse_o consider_v and_o by_o reason_n of_o this_o diversity_n divide_v into_o two_o the_o one_o call_v old_a ground_v on_o christ_n be_v promise_v to_o come_v the_o other_o new_a on_o christ_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n god_n have_v set_v it_o down_o in_o the_o instrument_n of_o his_o covenant_n wherein_o he_o have_v say_v 8.10_o i_o will_v be_v your_o god_n and_o you_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n what_o be_v the_o tenor_n how_o great_a the_o use_n how_o unspeakable_a the_o benefit_n of_o this_o holy_a covenant_n make_v with_o the_o patriarch_n the_o prophet_n the_o apostle_n and_o all_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n it_o be_v record_v in_o the_o sacred_a instrument_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n or_o covenant_n a_o abridgement_n whereof_o contain_v the_o summeof_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n be_v deliver_v in_o the_o article_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n or_o creed_n as_o we_o term_v it_o gather_v out_o of_o god_n word_n wherefore_o as_o the_o covenant_n consist_v of_o two_o branch_n so_o the_o creed_n express_v it_o contain_v two_o part_n one_o of_o they_o instruct_v our_o faith_n touch_v god_n who_o say_v to_o his_o servant_n i_o will_v be_v your_o god_n the_o other_o touch_v the_o people_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o church_n to_o who_o god_n say_v you_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n touch_v god_n it_o teach_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o who_o be_v one_o god_n in_o nature_n distinct_a in_o three_o person_n the_o father_n the_o creator_n the_o son_n the_o redeemer_n the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o sanctifier_n touch_v the_o people_n of_o god_n it_o teach_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v a_o church_n holy_a and_o catholic_a which_o have_v communion_n of_o the_o saint_n to_o who_o their_o sin_n be_v forgive_v who_o body_n shall_v be_v raise_v up_o again_o from_o death_n and_o be_v join_v with_o their_o soul_n shall_v live_v everlasting_o now_o to_o make_v the_o matter_n more_o evident_a and_o plain_a that_o this_o city_n of_o god_n and_o company_n of_o the_o choose_a be_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n first_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v call_v effectual_o out_o of_o the_o filth_n of_o other_o man_n to_o know_v and_o serve_v he_o by_o christ_n who_o do_v lighten_v their_o mind_n and_o move_v their_o heart_n through_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o whole_a company_n of_o they_o who_o be_v so_o call_v be_v name_v the_o church_n by_o a_o excellency_n not_o a_o common_a one_o but_o a_o pass_a eminent_a and_o most_o noble_a church_n as_o wherein_o the_o faithful_a all_o be_v comprehend_v that_o either_o be_v or_o have_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o end_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v term_v in_o 12.23_o scripture_n the_o church_n of_o the_o first_o bear_v who_o be_v write_v in_o heaven_n which_o 5._o god_n do_v predestinate_a to_o be_v adopt_v in_o himself_o according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o wil._n which_o 5.23_o christ_n be_v give_v to_o it_o by_o his_o father_n as_o a_o head_n to_o the_o body_n love_v as_o his_o spouse_n redeem_v it_o from_o satan_n and_o quicken_v it_o with_o his_o spirit_n have_v suffer_v death_n himself_o to_o deliver_v we_o from_o the_o gulf_n of_o death_n moreover_o as_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o this_o church_n be_v call_v out_o of_o the_o rascal_n sort_n of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n so_o be_v it_o clear_v too_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v holy_a for_o 1.4_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n 7.23_o can_v not_o abide_v they_o who_o be_v worker_n of_o iniquity_n 14.21_o neither_o shall_v any_o cananite_n be_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n and_o ●7_n into_o the_o heavenly_a city_n there_o shall_v enter_v no_o unclean_a thing_n nor_o whatsoever_o work_v abomination_n or_o lie_v christ_n therefore_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o church_n his_o body_n who_o 8.30_o as_o he_o call_v they_o who_o he_o predestinate_a so_o justify_v they_o who_o he_o call_v 5.26_o have_v cleanse_v the_o church_n from_o her_o sin_n by_o his_o blood_n renu_v she_o from_o the_o filth_n of_o the_o flesh_n unto_o holiness_n which_o he_o begin_v in_o this_o life_n and_o perfit_v in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v when_o he_o shall_v present_v she_o without_o spot_n and_o wrinkle_n 8_o a_o glorious_a spouse_n unto_o himself_o so_o that_o both_o the_o church_n may_v well_o be_v term_v holy_a and_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n the_o church_n communion_n which_o militant_a on_o earth_n be_v holy_a in_o affection_n triumphant_a in_o heaven_n be_v holy_a in_o perfection_n both_o militant_a and_o triumphant_a be_v in_o
indeed_o more_o sound_a than_o other_o some_o according_a as_o the_o word_n be_v more_o pure_o preach_v and_o the_o spirit_n work_v more_o effectual_o but_o all_o of_o they_o sound_z but_o where_o the_o word_n of_o god_n either_o be_v not_o preach_v so_o that_o there_o grow_v a_o famine_n or_o be_v preach_v corrupt_o mix_v with_o man_n word_n as_o it_o be_v with_o leaven_n or_o darnel_n or_o poison_v as_o they_o who_o receive_v no_o food_n be_v like_a to_o die_v through_o hunger_n &_o 17._o such_o as_o eat_v bread_n make_v of_o corn_n and_o ●●rnel_n do_v fall_v into_o a_o light_a fren●●●_n so_o must_v we_o needs_o judge_v that_o church_n who_o food_n be_v either_o none_o or_o naught_o be_v apt_a to_o disease_n and_o near_o to_o their_o death_n for_o amos_n declare_v that_o man_n be_v cast_v away_o through_o want_n of_o the_o word_n in_o that_o he_o tell_v israel_n that_o 8.11_o god_n will_v send_v a_o famine_n and_o a_o thirst_n of_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o when_o they_o shall_v seek_v for_o to_o and_o fro_o and_o find_v not_o where_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o virgin_n and_o young_a man_n shall_v faint_v with_o thirst_n and_o fall_v and_o never_o rise_v again_o now_o that_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o word_n do_v hurt_v too_o the_o apostle_n note_v in_o advertise_v timothee_n that_o 3._o they_o who_o teach_v other_o doctrine_n and_o consent_v not_o to_o the_o wholesome_a word_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v according_a to_o godliness_n 4._o be_v 〈◊〉_d sick_a and_o do_v dote_v about_o noisome_a folly_n which_o edify_v not_o to_o godly_a faith_n in_o so_o mu●h_o that_o 2.17_o their_o word_n do_v fret_v as_o a_o kind_n of_o canker_n which_o have_v take_v hold_v of_o one_o part_n of_o the_o body_n do_v eat_v out_o the_o next_o part_n by_o little_a &_o little_a until_o the_o whole_a body_n at_o last_o be_v clean_o consume_v which_o if_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v as_o it_o must_v of_o necessity_n unless_o the_o better_a remedy_n be_v speedy_o provide_v for_o heal_v of_o the_o body_n that_o which_o be_v a_o body_n do_v become_v a_o carcase_n and_o be_v no_o long_o a_o church_n it_o be_v leave_v destitute_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o soul_n thereof_o and_o of_o the_o soul_n instrument_n that_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o this_o death_n be_v threaten_v by_o christ_n to_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o old_a church_n refuse_v he_o their_o messiah_n ●●_o therefore_o shall_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v take_v from_o you_o and_o give_v to_o a_o nation_n which_o shall_v bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o it_o and_o in_o the_o new_a church_n to_o the_o ephesian_n have_v leave_v their_o first_o love_n 2.5_o i_o will_v come_v against_o thou_o short_o &_o will_v remove_v thy_o candlestick_n out_o of_o his_o place_n except_o thou_o amend_v which_o two_o thing_n foretell_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o two_o church_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n within_o a_o few_o year_n when_o the_o gospel_n be_v remove_v from_o they_o to_o the_o gentile_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n many_o age_n after_o when_o have_v be_v sick_a first_o of_o sundry_a heresy_n it_o die_v a_o while_n ago_o of_o the_o plague_n of_o mahomet_n thus_o i_o have_v declare_v as_o brief_o as_o i_o can_v how_o particular_a church_n be_v call_v member_n of_o the_o catholic_a how_o they_o be_v ordain_v to_o learn_v and_o practice_n go●s_v service_n how_o the_o good_a in_o they_o be_v intermingle_v with_o the_o bad_a the_o godly_a with_o hypocrite_n final_o what_o their_o health_n be_v what_o their_o disease_n be_v and_o when_o they_o must_v be_v count_v sound_n when_o unsound_a which_o point_v be_v mark_v my_o pain_n will_v be_v the_o lesser_a in_o open_v the_o conclusion_n the_o two_o stem_n whereof_o on_o what_o root_n they_o grow_v you_o perceive_v already_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n it_o be_v no_o sound_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n what_o can_v be_v more_o clear_a for_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o church_n universal_a the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v particular_a so_o that_o in_o my_o judgement_n the_o papist_n speak_v monstrous_o when_o church_n they_o call_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o catholic_a church_n and_o make_v they_o all_o one_o some_o will_v say_v perhaps_o that_o when_o they_o call_v it_o catholic_a they_o mean_v it_o to_o be_v sound_a and_o of_o a_o right_a belief_n such_o as_o do_v hold_v the_o catholic_a faith_n as_o the_o cathol_a civil_a law_n do_v term_v the_o right_a beléever_n catholic_a christian_n and_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n be_v name_v catholic_a by_o co●nelium_n cyprian_a yet_o that_o be_v false_a too_o for_o they_o geve_v the_o title_n of_o catholic_a church_n of_o rome_n that_o 11._o they_o may_v put_v into_o the_o head_n of_o the_o unskilful_a that_o that_o be_v the_o church_n out_o of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n but_o out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o have_v be_v save_v innumerable_a &_o shall_v be_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n not_o one_o but_o let_v it_o be_v grant_v that_o they_o mean_v by_o catholic_a a_o church_n hold_v the_o right_a faith_n i_o deny_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v hold_v the_o right_a faith_n and_o that_o be_v the_o other_o part_n of_o my_o conclusion_n it_o be_v no_o ●ound_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n now_o when_o i_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o sound_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n i_o mean_v not_o that_o it_o languish_v of_o a_o little_a sickness_n or_o disease_n not_o dangerous_a which_o may_v seem_v rather_o to_o have_v abate_v somewhat_o of_o exquisite_a health_n then_o have_v bereave_v she_o of_o all_o health_n for_o as_o 5._o galen_n teach_v of_o the_o health_n of_o the_o body_n that_o it_o have_v a_o reasonable_a breadth_n as_o you_o will_v say_v and_o certain_a degree_n as_o it_o be_v of_o perfitnes_n that_o they_o who_o be_v able_a to_o go_v about_o their_o business_n and_o do_v affair_n of_o life_n be_v to_o be_v count_v whole_a though_o they_o enjoy_v not_o a_o most_o perfect_a health_n so_o in_o the_o health_n of_o church_n i_o deem_v there_o be_v certain_a degree_n of_o sincerity_n that_o they_o who_o do_v the_o function_n of_o spiritual_a life_n reasonable_o well_o be_v to_o be_v count_v ●ound_n although_o they_o attain_v not_o to_o a_o most_o absolute_a soundness_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n as_o we_o judge_v our_o own_o church_n to_o be_v sound_n although_o angl._n there_o remain_v some_o distemper_n in_o they_o by_o the_o relic_n of_o those_o disease_n wherewith_o the_o contagion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v cast_v they_o down_o so_o that_o they_o can_v not_o yet_o be_v recover_v full_o in_o like_a sort_n angli●a●_n we_o judge_v of_o the_o church_n of_o germany_n which_o be_v trouble_v with_o the_o error_n of_o consubstantiation_n as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o grudge_n of_o a_o little_a ague_n if_o other_o wise_a they_o hold_v christian_a faith_n and_o love_n sound_o and_o sincere_o but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o distemper_v with_o a_o little_a ague_n such_o as_o hinder_v not_o the_o function_n of_o life_n great_o but_o be_v sick_a of_o a_o canker_n or_o rather_o of_o a_o leprosy_n or_o rather_o of_o a_o pestilence_n in_o so_o much_o that_o she_o be_v past_a hope_n of_o recovery_n unless_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o heavenly_a physician_n do_v give_v her_o wholesome_a medicine_n to_o purge_v she_o of_o pernicious_a humour_n and_o therefore_o i_o pronounce_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v no_o sound_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o i_o will_v prove_v by_o two_o reason_n the_o one_o of_o the_o cause_n the_o other_o of_o the_o effect_n whereof_o from_o the_o one_o disease_n do_v arise_v in_o the_o other_o they_o show_v themselves_o by_o they_o both_o they_o be_v sure_o prove_v i_o will_v to_o god_n i_o may_v discourse_v hereof_o at_o large_a according_a as_o the_o weightines_n of_o the_o thing_n require_v but_o we_o must_v be_v content_a to_o do_v as_o time_n will_v license_v us._n you_o will_v pardon_v i_o therefore_o i_o trust_v if_o i_o run_v they_o over_o somewhat_o hasty_o and_o as_o they_o say_v touch_n and_o go_v i_o will_v hold_v out_o my_o finger_n towards_o the_o well_o head_n guess_v you_o the_o lion_n by_o his_o paw_n concern_v the_o cause_n which_o do_v breed_v disease_n and_o sickness_n in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v as_o i_o have_v touch_v already_o clear_a and_o certain_a that_o they_o be_v either_o the_o want_n of_o food_n of_o god_n word_n
beth-aven_a 10.8_o the_o 12.32_o high_a place_n of_o auen_n be_v the_o sin_n of_o israel_n therefore_o go_v you_o not_o up_o to_o beth-aven_a say_v the_o lord_n thus_o we_o be_v express_o command_v by_o god_n to_o depart_v and_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o those_o church_n wherein_o the_o right_a way_n either_o of_o his_o knowledge_n or_o of_o his_o worship_n be_v pervert_v much_o more_o from_o those_o church_n wherein_o they_o be_v pervert_v both_o but_o they_o be_v both_o pervert_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n most_o notorious_o as_o i_o have_v declare_v it_o remain_v then_o that_o the_o reform_a church_n have_v sever_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n most_o lawful_o &_o just_o and_o therefore_o our_o lect._n english_a papist_n and_o the_o dona●istas_n lovanist_n deal_n shall_v i_o say_v of_o ignorance_n or_o of_o malice_n but_o of_o whether_o soever_o they_o deal_v very_o lewd_o who_o to_o make_v we_o odious_a for_o sever_a ourselves_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o if_o we_o have_v play_v the_o schismatics_n therein_o do_v report_n of_o we_o that_o we_o rend_v ourselves_o from_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o the_o donatist_n do_v true_o or_o false_o let_v the_o faithful_a judge_n chief_o since_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o donatist_n donatist_n sound_n not_o any_o fault_n with_o catholic_n either_o for_o the_o service_n wherewith_o they_o worship_v god_n or_o for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n which_o they_o preach_v but_o show_v we_o have_v convict_v the_o romanist_n of_o impiety_n both_o for_o their_o idolatrous_a profane_v of_o his_o service_n and_o for_o their_o ungodly_a corrupt_v of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o these_o man_n who_o blame_v we_o do_v themselves_o teach_v that_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o join_v and_o communicate_v with_o that_o church_n who_o service_n be_v idolatrous_a who_o doctrine_n be_v ungodly_a in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o lovanist_n 9_o reprove_v &_o that_o worthy_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n of_o africa_n 2d_o yea_o s._n austin_n too_o for_o say_v that_o the_o prophet_n elias_n and_o elisaeus_n resort_v to_o the_o church_n and_o service_n of_o the_o israelite_n when_o it_o be_v stain_v with_o idola●trie_n and_o 32._o a_o english_a papist_n condemn_v though_o unjust_o they_o who_o hear_v our_o sermon_n because_o it_o be_v horrible_a sin_n to_o give_v patient_a hear_n to_o blasphemy_n such_o as_o he_o say_v we_o preach_v wherefore_o if_o the_o romish_a doctor_n themselves_o shall_v sit_v in_o judgement_n upon_o we_o for_o trial_n of_o the_o schism_n and_o donatisme_n so_o to_o term_v it_o whereof_o they_o indite_v we_o no_o doubt_n unless_o their_o mind_n be_v overcast_v in_o like_a sort_n as_o be_v 11_o the_o eye_n of_o elymas_n they_o will_v acquit_v we_o of_o it_o and_o pronounce_v of_o christian_n as_o 19.6_o pilate_n do_v of_o christ_n i_o find_v no_o fault_n in_o he_o for_o what_o have_v we_o do_v in_o forsake_v their_o synagogue_n that_o may_v deserve_v the_o check_n of_o a_o severe_a censor_n much_o less_o the_o condemnation_n of_o a_o indifferent_a judge_n save_o in_o this_o perhaps_o that_o roscio_n as_o mad_a fimbria_n complain_v of_o scaevola_n we_o receive_v not_o the_o whole_a weapon_n into_o our_o body_n the_o minister_n of_o christ_n be_v bind_v to_o 4.2_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o preach_v it_o to_o 1.13_o reprove_v the_o people_n sin_n they_o reprove_v they_o to_o 2.3_o suffer_v affliction_n even_o unto_o the_o shed_n of_o their_o blood_n they_o suffer_v the_o people_n of_o christ_n be_v bind_v to_o 10.27_o hear_v the_o pastor_n voice_n they_o hear_v it_o to_o 4.10_o worship_n god_n &_o serve_v he_o only_o they_o do_v it_o to_o 12.8_o profess_v their_o faith_n before_o man_n they_o profess_v it_o if_o against_o the_o will_n of_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n as_o it_o fall_v out_o in_o france_n 5.29_o they_o ought_v to_o obey_v rather_o god_n than_o man_n as_o the_o apostle_n tell_v the_o ruler_n of_o israel_n if_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n which_o befall_v to_o england_n through_o god_n most_o gracious_a goodness_n and_o we_o beseech_v he_o it_o may_v for_o ever_o they_o be_v to_o obey_v their_o prince_n in_o the_o lord_n as_o 23.2_o the_o priest_n and_o prophet_n and_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n do_v obey_v josias_n wherefore_o see_v all_o the_o reform_a church_n not_o to_o rehearse_v they_o in_o particular_a follow_v the_o same_o rule_n which_o england_n do_v &_o france_n have_v sever_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o they_o ought_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n they_o be_v not_o seditious_a because_o they_o have_v do_v but_o they_o be_v sacrilegious_a unless_o they_o have_v do_v so_o neither_o have_v we_o deal_v as_o schismatics_n in_o forsake_v but_o other_o deal_v as_o heretic_n in_o follow_v the_o whore_n who_o heart_n i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o may_v pierce_v into_o which_o our_o saviour_n say_v to_o his_o touch_v babylon_n 18.4_o go_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n that_o you_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o that_o you_o receve_v not_o of_o her_o plague_n and_o thus_o have_v i_o declare_v to_o you_o reverend_a sir_n my_o judgement_n of_o the_o conclusion_n which_o you_o propose_v in_o open_v whereof_o although_o i_o have_v be_v long_o partly_o be_v move_v with_o the_o weightinesse_n of_o the_o point_n and_o partly_o presume_v of_o the_o patience_n of_o the_o hearer_n then_o in_o this_o place_n be_v usual_a yet_o have_v i_o purposely_o omit_v many_o thing_n which_o adversary_n may_v object_v because_o i_o think_v they_o may_v be_v produce_v and_o answer_v in_o the_o disputation_n itself_o more_o convenient_o psal._n 51.18_o be_v favourable_a o_o god_n to_o zion_n for_o thy_o good_a pleasure_n build_v the_o wall_n of_o jerusalem_n john_n rainoldes_n to_o the_o christian_a reader_n it_o be_v now_o five_o year_n almost_o gentle_a reader_n since_o be_v occasion_v by_o order_n of_o our_o university_n to_o handle_v and_o defend_v these_o conclusion_n in_o disputation_n i_o be_v move_v to_o make_v they_o common_a unto_o many_o that_o through_o the_o instruction_n and_o consolation_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o church_n may_v reap_v some_o fruit_n of_o they_o howbeit_o as_o apelles_n be_v wont_a to_o set_v forth_o his_o picture_n at_o his_o stall_n that_o if_o any_o fault_n be_v find_v he_o may_v amend_v it_o before_o they_o be_v deliver_v to_o such_o as_o they_o be_v draw_v for_o the_o like_a have_v i_o do_v with_o i_o though_o not_o like_o he_o by_o keep_v they_o in_o latin_a at_o home_n as_o it_o be_v that_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v just_o blame_v in_o they_o it_o may_v be_v correct_v before_o i_o send_v they_o abroad_o to_o english_a man_n in_o the_o which_o respect_n though_o i_o can_v hardly_o resist_v the_o importunate_a desire_n of_o sundry_a friend_n of_o who_o some_o have_v translate_v they_o request_v that_o i_o will_v translate_v they_o myself_o or_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v print_v yet_o i_o resist_v it_o &_o hope_v they_o take_v it_o in_o good_a part_n but_o now_o be_v otherwise_o enforce_v to_o publish_v my_o conference_n with_o m._n hart_n i_o have_v condescend_v unto_o their_o request_n to_o do_v they_o into_o english_a &_o publish_v they_o withal_o the_o rather_o because_o i_o have_v prove_v herein_o that_o the_o faith_n profess_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o catholic_a faith_n the_o contrary_a whereof_o be_v the_o last_o point_n that_o m._n hart_n avouch_v so_o that_o see_v he_o break_v off_o conference_n thereon_o and_o will_v not_o put_v the_o faith_n of_o his_o church_n to_o that_o trial_n to_o which_o he_o have_v put_v the_o pope_n the_o head_n of_o it_o the_o godly_a who_o will_v wish_v that_o also_o have_v be_v handle_v to_o the_o confusion_n of_o all_o popery_n may_v for_o want_n of_o large_a repast_n take_v this_o sclenderer_n as_o better_a half_n a_o loaf_n man_n say_v than_o no_o bread_n and_o i_o be_o the_o bold_a to_o set_v it_o before_o they_o because_o doctor_n stapleton_n &_o licentiate_a martin_n who_o as_o evil_a physician_n to_o get_v themselves_o work_n do_v praise_n unwholesome_a baggage_n above_o wholesome_a food_n have_v discommend_v it_o chief_o since_o their_o deal_n therein_o have_v be_v such_o that_o they_o have_v show_v great_a stomach_n they_o wisdom_n as_o physician_n of_o no_o value_n for_o of_o four_o point_n that_o i_o find_v reprove_v by_o the_o former_a of_o they_o in_o 1582._o the_o last_o edition_n of_o his_o doctrinal_a principle_n one_o be_v 6._o that_o i_o distinguish_v the_o militant_a and_o visible_a church_n from_o the_o catholic_a after_o a_o new_a sort_n unskilful_o and_o fond_o the_o distinction_n thereof_o conclusion_n i_o ground_v on_o the_o scripture_n 1●_n fond_a and_o 1●_n new_a it_o may_v be_v to_o other_o not_o
to_o us._n but_o the_o doctor_n see_v that_o babylon_n will_v fall_v if_o the_o distinction_n stand_v wherefore_o if_o he_o have_v no_o strong_a shot_n than_o this_o to_o discharge_v against_o it_o i_o will_v bear_v with_o he_o as_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o taunt_n also_o loser_n must_v have_v their_o word_n an_o other_o point_n conclusion_n he_o carp_v at_o be_v my_o exposition_n of_o holy_a catholic_a church_n which_o i_o have_v prove_v by_o the_o papist_n themselves_o that_o it_o must_v needs_o signify_v the_o company_n of_o the_o choose_a alone_o not_o mix_v with_o wicked_a one_o because_o by_o their_o symboli_fw-la catechism_n it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n &_o 4.16_o all_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v quicken_v by_o his_o spirit_n which_o the_o wicked_a be_v not_o he_o 11._o repli_v that_o the_o church_n be_v say_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n quicken_v by_o his_o spirit_n because_o some_o part_n of_o it_o be_v so_o not_o all_o the_o body_n a_o answer_n somewhat_o strange_a consider_v that_o the_o scripture_n which_o i_o have_v allege_v say_v that_o 〈◊〉_d all_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v quicken_v so_o as_o for_o that_o 14._o he_o note_v of_o the_o word_n catholic_a that_o i_o and_o philip_n mornay_n expound_v it_o not_o in_o one_o sort_n 2._o philip_n mornaye_v excellent_a gift_n and_o fruitful_a labour_n i_o reverence_v and_o love_n and_o both_o of_o we_o have_v aim_v at_o the_o truth_n whether_o have_v come_v near_o it_o 29._o let_v the_o prophet_n judge_n but_o if_o among_o prophet_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n 30._o somewhat_o be_v reveil_v to_o one_o that_o be_v not_o to_o a_o other_o this_o justifi_v not_o they_o ●_o who_o say_v they_o be_v jew_n &_o be_v not_o but_o be_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n yet_o this_o be_v the_o sound_a reason_n that_o he_o have_v against_o my_o conclusion_n that_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n which_o we_o believe_v be_v the_o whole_a company_n of_o god_n elect_v and_o choose_v for_o touch_v that_o he_o add_v that_o he_o have_v disprove_v it_o by_o show_v that_o the_o church_n be_v distinguish_v from_o heretical_a assembly_n by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a he_o have_v disprove_v it_o as_o sound_o thereby_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o petri._n catholic_a epistle_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v not_o so_o call_v as_o general_a &_o write_v to_o no_o certain_a person_n because_o that_o other_o writing_n be_v name_v catholic_a also_o to_o distinguish_v they_o from_o heretical_a the_o three_o point_n he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o confute_v be_v a_o argument_n that_o i_o make_v to_o prove_v my_o three_o conclusion_n 16._o all_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n some_o word_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o word_n of_o error_n but_o he_o that_o tell_v the_o truth_n always_o be_v more_o to_o be_v credit_v they_o he_o that_o lie_v sometime_o therefore_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v to_o be_v credit_v more_fw-mi they_o be_v the_o church_n and_o to_o this_o argument_n say_v he_o i_o answer_v brief_o that_o no_o word_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o word_n of_o error_n that_o be_v that_o no_o erroneus_fw-la thing_n be_v ever_o teach_v define_v or_o approve_a by_o the_o church_n in_o her_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n teach_v uniform_o in_o the_o decree_n of_o counsel_n chief_o of_o general_a counsel_n in_o that_o which_o the_o father_n teach_v with_o one_o consent_n in_o her_o head_n the_o pope_n define_v &_o deliver_v any_o thing_n public_o &_o final_o in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o all_o the_o church_n hold_v though_o several_o some_o bishop_n may_v private_o err_v in_o teach_v and_o one_o or_o more_o father_n may_v write_v some_o untrue_a thing_n or_o be_v in_o some_o error_n and_o somewhat_o even_o in_o counsel_n without_o the_o decree_n itself_o may_v be_v say_v or_o reason_v inconuenient_o and_o to_o conclude_v the_o pope_n may_v be_v oversee_v private_o in_o somewhat_o but_o this_o must_v be_v certes_o impute_v to_o the_o frailty_n of_o man_n not_o to_o the_o church_n herself_o which_o speech_n of_o d._n stapletons_n if_o it_o be_v a_o answer_n unto_o my_o argument_n then_o can_v i_o tell_v he_o a_o very_a brief_a way_n to_o answer_v my_o conclusion_n all_o with_o one_o word_n how_o by_o grant_v they_o all_o to_o be_v true_a for_o though_o it_o be_v so_o that_o nether_a bishop_n teach_v uniform_o may_v err_v nor_o father_n consent_v nor_o counsel_n in_o decree_n nor_o the_o pope_n in_o public_a and_o definitive_a sentence_n which_o i_o both_o conclusion_n there_o &_o 7._o else_o where_o have_v show_v to_o be_v otherwise_o but_o if_o it_o be_v so_o yet_o see_v that_o bishop_n and_o father_n and_o counsel_n and_o the_o pope_n himself_o may_v err_v as_o he_o confess_v in_o this_o or_o that_o point_n and_o this_o or_o that_o manner_n he_o grant_v that_o which_o i_o say_v that_o some_o word_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o word_n of_o error_n but_o those_o word_n must_v certes_o say_v he_o be_v impute_v to_o the_o frailty_n of_o man_n not_o to_o the_o church_n herself_o now_o certes_o m_n doctor_n be_v a_o merry_a man_n who_o can_v shift_v a_o argument_n off_o with_o such_o a_o jest_n as_o though_o the_o church_n herself_o consist_v not_o of_o man_n and_o therefore_o must_v needs_o offend_v so_o through_o frailty_n the_o man_n offend_v so_o the_o four_o and_o last_o point_n wherewith_o 9_o he_o find_v fault_n be_v that_o among_o conclusion_n the_o reason_n why_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v no_o sound_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n i_o bring_v this_o that_o touch_v expound_v of_o the_o scripture_n she_o condemn_v all_o sense_n and_o meaning_n thereof_o which_o be_v against_o the_o sense_n that_o herself_o hold_v or_o against_o the_o father_n consent_v all_o in_o one_o whereof_o in_o that_o he_o gather_v that_o i_o allow_v not_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o father_n yea_o that_o i_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v a_o mark_n and_o token_n of_o a_o false_a church_n to_o admit_v the_o joint-consent_n of_o the_o father_n in_o expound_v of_o the_o scripture_n he_o do_v i_o great_a wrong_n for_o though_o by_o follow_v too_o much_o brevity_n in_o latin_a i_o fall_v into_o obscurity_n and_o say_v not_o so_o plain_o that_o which_o i_o will_v and_o shall_v as_o in_o the_o english_a now_o i_o have_v yet_o that_o which_o i_o say_v do_v clear_v i_o of_o his_o slander_v as_o d._n 9_o fulke_n have_v show_v who_o i_o can_v better_o thank_v for_o his_o defend_n of_o i_o then_o deserve_v the_o praise_n that_o he_o have_v give_v i_o therein_o nay_o i_o be_v so_o far_o from_o note_v that_o as_o faulty_a in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o fault_n which_o i_o note_v be_v her_o vile_a abuse_v the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n against_o their_o judgement_n in_o that_o point_n for_o i_o declare_v straight_o in_o the_o word_n ensue_v that_o first_o she_o autorise_v thereby_o her_o own_o practice_n as_o the_o right_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n though_o contrary_a to_o itself_o next_o she_o allow_v the_o puddle_n of_o the_o schoolman_n &_o will_v have_v they_o take_v for_o water_n of_o life_n last_o when_o some_o father_n gainsay_v she_o she_o reject_v they_o because_o they_o all_o consent_v not_o and_o admit_v they_o who_o do_v make_v for_o she_o as_o have_v hit_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o which_o branch_n the_o last_o import_v not_o that_o i_o refuse_v the_o father_n consent_v all_o in_o one_o the_o former_a two_o import_n that_o i_o condemn_v the_o frenzy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n maintain_v her_o dunce_n and_o deed_n against_o the_o father_n but_o 4._o the_o serpent_n assemble_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v set_v down_o that_o i_o speak_v of_o touch_v the_o expound_v of_o the_o scripture_n so_o suttil_o that_o a_o simple_a man_n will_v think_v they_o allow_v such_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n only_o as_o the_o father_n geve_v all_o with_o one_o consent_n whereas_o in_o very_a truth_n they_o do_v nothing_o less_o they_o disallow_v they_o rather_o for_o whether_o by_o pat●um_fw-la the_o father_n consent_v all_o in_o one_o they_o mean_v the_o father_n all_o simple_o none_o except_v that_o consent_n be_v a_o phoenix_n and_o never_o will_v be_v find_v or_o whether_o they_o mean_v a_o good_a number_n of_o they_o as_o 2._o m._n hart_n expound_v it_o they_o dissent_v from_o sense_n agree_v on_o by_o that_o number_n for_o example_n the_o scripture_n say_v 10.16_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o flock_a one_o pastor_n the_o father_n 49._o austin_n 49._o chrysostome_n 6._o cyrill_n eua●gri●m_fw-la jerome_n &_o 36._o gregory_n expound_v this_o of_o christ._n the_o church_n of_o rome_n gr●●or_n
〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ad_fw-la eas_fw-la thus_o &_o cerei_fw-la cic._n off_o lib._n 3._o 3._o polydor._fw-la virgil_n de_fw-fr inventor_n rerum_fw-la lib._n 2._o c._n 23._o &_o l._n 6._o c._n 13._o 13._o durand_n l._n 6._o cap._n 77._o 77._o cic._n in_o verrem_fw-la lib._n 4._o 4._o pausanias_n in_o corinthiacis_n herodian_a lib._n 1._o apulei_n aur._n asin._n lib._n 11._o 11._o leand._n albe●t_n descript_n italiae_fw-la histor._n s._n mariae_fw-la lauret_n script_n ab_fw-la hier._n angelit_fw-la ad_fw-la clement_n sept_fw-fr sept_fw-fr a_o town_n in_o italy_n where_o there_o be_v a_o temple_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n more_o celebrate_v with_o lie_a miracle_n and_o thereupon_o with_o resort_n of_o man_n then_o her_o temple_n be_v at_o walsingham_n in_o england_n of_o which_o erasmus_n write_v in_o colloqu_n pe●egrinat_fw-la religionis_fw-la ergo_fw-la ergo_fw-la act_n 19.27_o 19.27_o exod._n 30.34_o 30.34_o levit._fw-la 2.3_o 2.3_o in_o rationali_fw-la divinorum_fw-la o●●i●iorum_fw-la o●●i●iorum_fw-la the_o canonist_n &_o pope_n de_fw-fr consecration_n distinct_a 1._o &_o so_o forth_o in_o th●_n decree_n &_o decretal_n decretal_n extra_n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la unctione_n cap._n unico_fw-la unico_fw-la god_n by_o his_o word_n exod._n 39.22_o 39.22_o to_o figure_n &_o betoken_v christ._n heb._n 8.5_o out_o of_o exod._n 25.40_o 25.40_o exod._n 29.41_o 29.41_o joh●_n 1.29_o 1.29_o reu._n 14.1_o 14.1_o gal._n 2.14_o 2.14_o levit._fw-la 11.47_o &_o 23.25_o 23.25_o col._n 2.16_o 2.16_o gal._n 4.3_o 4.3_o act._n 2.38_o 2.38_o act._n 10.15_o 10.15_o act._n 15.10_o 15.10_o de_fw-fr praescriptionib_fw-la advers._n haeret_fw-la haeret_fw-la epist._n 9_o &_o 19_o ad_fw-la hieronymsi_fw-la hieronymsi_fw-la gal._n 2._o ver_fw-la 14._o 14._o ver_fw-la 12._o 12._o ver_fw-la 13._o 13._o ver_fw-la 11._o 11._o non_fw-fr judaiza●_n ecclesia_fw-la sicut_fw-la aliqui_fw-la mentiu●tur_fw-la extra_n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la unctione_n §._o ungitur_fw-la ungitur_fw-la sess._n 7._o the_o sacrament_n in_o gen_fw-la ●an_v 13._o 13._o sess._n 23._o can_n ●_o ●_o galat._n 1.7_o &_o 2.3_o &_o 4.9_o 4.9_o galat._n 5.2_o 5.2_o 2._o pet._n 2.1_o 2.1_o sess._n 22._o cap._n 5._o 5._o pia_fw-la mater_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sine_fw-la adminic●lis_fw-la exteriori●us_fw-la exteriori●us_fw-la matt._n 13.23_o act._n 13.15_o 1._o cor._n 14.19_o 14.19_o con._n trident_n sess._n 22._o cap._n 8._o 1._o king_n 18.28_o 18.28_o sess._n 22._o ca●_n ●_o anathema_n fit_a fit_a joh._n 9.22_o 9.22_o sess._n 22._o ca●_n 5._o 5._o cap._n 8._o 8._o justin._n mart._n apolog_fw-la 2._o tertullian_n in_o apologet_v cyprian_a de_fw-fr orat_fw-la dom._n euseb._n hist._n eccles_n l._n 7._o c._n 8._o augustin_n de_fw-fr catechizand_n rudib_fw-la cap._n 9_o 9_o isidor_n de_fw-fr of●ic_n eccles_n l._n 1._o c._n 10._o cyrillus_n aen._n silu._n hist._n bohem._n cap._n 13._o io._n bele_v the_o divin_v of●ic_fw-la in_o prooem_n lyra_n in_o 1._o cor._n 14._o caietan_n opusculor_fw-la tom._n 3._o tractat_fw-la 15._o 15._o liturg._n basil._n ex_fw-la version_n syr._n quam_fw-la vocant_fw-la anaphoram_n anaphoram_n bellon_n obseruat_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 12._o 12._o auentin_n annal_n boior_fw-la lib._n 4._o 4._o sigismond_n lib._n in_o comm●nt●rer_n moscovit_fw-la moscovit_fw-la f●an_n aluar._n in_o descript_n a●thiop_n cap._n 11._o 11._o confess_v augu●t_n art_n 7._o wirt●mberg_n art_n 35._o 35._o 1._o cor._n ●4_n ve●_n ●0_n ●0_n ver_fw-la 26._o 26._o sess._n 22._o cap._n 8._o 8._o ●●tsi_fw-fr non_fw-la tamen_fw-la tamen_fw-la ut_fw-la vulgari_fw-la passim_fw-la lingua_fw-la celebraretur_fw-la celebraretur_fw-la secreté_n profer●_n verba_fw-la consecrationis_fw-la ho●_n est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la in_o canon_n missae_fw-la missae_fw-la council_n trident_n sess._n 22._o c._n 5._o 5._o thom._n aquin._n summ._n theolog._n part_n 3._o quaest_n 7●_n art_n 1._o d._n harding_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o 16._o art_n of_o b._n jewel_n challenge_v challenge_v luk._n 22.19_o 22.19_o clem._n constitut_o apost_n lib._n 8._o 8._o ambros._n de_fw-fr sacrament_n lib._n 4._o c._n 5._o leo_fw-la serm._n 6._o de_fw-fr ●eiun●o_fw-la 7._o men●is_fw-la justinian_n in_o authent_n 137._o §._o ad_fw-la haec_fw-la iubemus_fw-la iubemus_fw-la council_n trident_n sess._n 22._o can_n 9_o 9_o chrysost._n li●urgia_n bessario_n de_fw-fr sacrament_n eucharist_n eucharist_n as_o pope_n in●ocentius_n the_o three_o say_v in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o mass_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 1._o 1._o the_o reason_n that_o pope_n innocentius_n the_o three_o in_o the_o same_o place_n give_v of_o it_o it_o matt._n 10.27_o 10.27_o 1._o cor._n 11._o ver_fw-la 24._o 24._o ver_fw-la 26._o 26._o se●s_n 22._o cap_n 8._o 8._o frequenter_a frequenter_a sess._n 24._o cap._n 7._o 7._o vernacula_fw-la lingua_fw-la lingua_fw-la rom._n 10.3_o 10.3_o 2._o pet._n 1.5_o 1.5_o dist._n 38._o c●_n ignorantia_fw-la ignorantia_fw-la 2._o tim._n 2.15_o 2.15_o act._n 13._o ver_fw-la 15._o 15._o ver_fw-la 17._o 17._o act._n 17._o ver_fw-la 11._o 11._o ver_fw-la 12._o 12._o sess._n 22._o cap._n 8._o 8._o lament_n 4.4_o 4.4_o col._n 3.17_o 3.17_o psal._n 23.5_o 23.5_o council_n triden_n sess._n 22._o c._n 4._o gal._n 4.9_o 4.9_o epist●●8_n ●●8_z ad_fw-la i●nuar_n cap._n 6._o 6._o torrensis_n in_o confession_n augustinian_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 8._o tit_n 6._o 6._o motiu_fw-la 9_o 9_o council_n tri●dent_a sess._n 22._o cap._n 5._o 5._o ●ap_n 8._o &_o can_v 9_o 10_o cor._n 11.34_o 11.34_o sess._n 22._o cap._n 5._o 5._o benedictione●_n benedictione●_n epist._n 59_o ●d_a paulinsi_fw-fr quaest_n 5._o 5._o 1._o tim._n 2._o ●_o ble●●ing_v and_o to_o bless_v gr._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lat._n benedictio_fw-la &_o benedicere_fw-la benedicere_fw-la mat._n 26.26_o 26.26_o 1._o cor._n 10.16_o 10.16_o num._n 6.23_o 6.23_o erasm._n collo_fw-la in_o exorcism_n exorcism_n be_v ✚_o dixit_fw-la ●n_fw-fr can._n missae_fw-la missae_fw-la sermon·_n 181._o de_fw-fr tempore_fw-la tempore_fw-la censur_fw-fr serm_n 59_o in_o append_v de_fw-fr diversis_fw-la tom._n 10._o 10._o augustin_n in_o euang._n johan●_n tract_n 11●_n 11●_n chrysostom_n demonstrat_fw-la quód_fw-la christus_fw-la fit_a deus_fw-la deus_fw-la de_fw-fr coron●_n militis_fw-la militis_fw-la apud_fw-la judaeo●_n judaeo●_n ter_n mergitamur_fw-la lactis_fw-la &_o mellis_fw-la concordiam_fw-la praegustamus_fw-la praegustamus_fw-la omni_fw-la fideli_fw-la fideli_fw-la saluo_fw-la traditionis_fw-la respectu_fw-la quocunque_fw-la trad●tore_fw-la censetur_fw-la censetur_fw-la sleidan_n comment_n l._n 6._o &_o 10._o 10._o in_o evang_v johann_n tract_n 118._o 118._o wierus_n de_fw-fr praestigijs_fw-la daemon_n 〈◊〉_d ●_o cap._n 4._o &_o 10._o 10._o in_o canone_o missae_fw-la &_o communione_n communione_n ritus_fw-la celebrandi_fw-la mis●am_fw-la mis●am_fw-la microlog_n de_fw-fr ecclesiast_n obseruationib_fw-la cap._n 14._o 14._o imparem_fw-la numerum_fw-la semper_fw-la obseruamus_fw-la numero_fw-la deus_fw-la impair_v gaudet_fw-la gaudet_fw-la virgil._n in_o pharmaceutria_n eclog._n 8._o 8._o benno_n cardinalis_fw-la in_o histor_n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la hildebrandi_fw-la hildebrandi_fw-la microlog_n de_fw-fr obseruat_fw-la ecclesiast_fw-la cap._n 14._o 14._o cornel._n agrippa_n de_fw-fr occulta_fw-la philosophia_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 4._o &_o 6._o &_o 8._o de_fw-fr vanitate_fw-la scientiar_fw-la c._n 47._o &_o 48._o 48._o element_n magica_fw-la petr._n de_fw-fr aban_n in_o prae●at_n prae●at_n the_o auto●●_n of_o the_o treatise_n entitle_v micrologus_fw-la de_fw-la ecclesiast_n obse_fw-fr ru_fw-fr cap._n 14._o 14._o ●ap_n 18._o &_o 19_o 19_o for_o hildebrand_n be_v pope_n in_o the_o year_n of_o chris●_n 1084._o 1084._o amalar._n fortumat_n episcopus_fw-la trevirens_fw-la de_fw-fr ecclesiast_fw-la offic_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 24._o 24._o cap._n 26._o 26._o ordo_fw-la rom._n de_fw-fr officiis_fw-la divinis_fw-la cap._n de_fw-fr ●fficio_fw-la missae_fw-la missae_fw-la microlog_n de_fw-fr obseruat_fw-la ecclesiast_fw-la ca._n 17._o 17._o missale_n romanum_fw-la ex_fw-la decrete_a sacros_fw-la council_n trident._n restitutum_fw-la in_fw-la rit_fw-fr celebrandi_fw-la missam_fw-la &_o canone_o missae_fw-la missae_fw-la cornel._n agrippa_n the_o occult_a philosoph_n l._n 2._o c._n 5._o 5._o de_fw-fr ecclesiast_fw-la offic_n l._n 3._o c._n 24._o 24._o euseb._n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la constantin_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 22._o 22._o in_o hoc_fw-la signo_fw-la vince_n alan_n cop._n dialog_n 4._o cap._n 3._o 3._o martials●●●tise_v ●●●tise_z of_o the_o cross_n art_n 2._o harpsfielde_n cope_n dialog_n 4._o 4._o de_fw-fr vit_fw-fr constantin_n l._n 1._o c._n 25._o 25._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o word_n translate_v amiss_o by_o interpreter_n erat_fw-la litera_fw-la ●_o inserta_fw-la in_o medio_fw-la literae_fw-la ●_o have_v occasion_v ●ome_o to_o make_v the_o sign_n otherwise_o then_o eusebius_n describe_v it_o it_o de_fw-fr vit_fw-fr constantin_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 22._o 22._o cap._n 25._o 25._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o figure_n of_o the_o letter_n t._n tertullian_n advers._n marci●●_n lib._n 3._o hiero._n lib._n 3._o commentar_n in_o ezech._n cap._n 9_o 9_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d d._n harpsfield_n in_o his_o cope_n dialog_n 4._o c._n 3._o 3._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euseb._n de_fw-fr vit_fw-fr constan._n lib._n 1._o c._n 22._o 22._o act._n 4.12_o 4.12_o
the_o godly_a and_o give_v to_o sinner_n pardon_v now_o since_o our_o reform_a church_n have_v think_v it_o impious_a to_o offer_v any_o such_o prayer_n to_o creature_n why_o have_v you_o retain_v this_o to_o the_o cross_n and_o not_o the_o other_o to_o s._n thomas_n hart._n whether_o that_o prayer_n to_o s._n thomas_n of_o canterbury_n be_v in_o the_o roman_a portesse_n before_o they_o reform_v it_o i_o be_o not_o sure_a perhaps_o it_o be_v not_o although_o it_o be_v in_o we_o after_o the_o use_n of_o sarum_n rainoldes_n most_o likely_a that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a too_o since_o he_o die_v a_o martyr_n of_o the_o roman_a papacy_n but_o whether_o it_o be_v or_o no_o there_o be_v other_o thing_n cer●a_n uncertain_a and_o aliena_n inconvenient_a which_o the_o reformer_n have_v leave_v out_o as_o reformat_fw-la the_o pope_n confess_v who_o reformat_fw-la confess_v also_o that_o almost_o all_o primer_n yea_o the_o latin_a too_o referta_fw-la be_v stuff_v full_a with_o vain_a error_n of_o superstition_n before_o he_o reform_v it_o wherefore_o since_o you_o have_v leave_v out_o other_o superstitious_a &_o inconvenient_a thing_n in_o your_o reform_a seruicebooke_n why_o have_v you_o retain_v this_o prayer_n to_o the_o cross_n which_o may_v have_v go_v with_o the_o rest_n hart._n the_o other_o be_v abolish_v just_o as_o unfit_a but_o this_o be_v ●ot_n so_o for_o why_o shall_v you_o mislike_v a_o prayer_n to_o the_o cross_n of_o which_o s._n ●4_n paul_n say_v god_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v rejoice_v but_o in_o the_o cross_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n rainoldes_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n crucify_v as_o s._n paul_n do_v mean_v it_o not_o in_o the_o de●s_fw-la wood_n the_o paribulo_fw-la galowe_n the_o tangere_fw-la tree_n sequuntur_fw-la to_o which_o you_o make_v your_o prayer_n for_o god_n forbid_v that_o we_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o any_o thing_n save_v 1.31_o in_o the_o lord_n who_o redeem_n of_o we_o by_o suffer_v death_n upon_o the_o cross_n because_o it_o be_v a_o stumble_a block_n to_o the_o jew_n s._n paul_n say_v 〈◊〉_d the_o cross_n be_v a_o stumble_a block_n by_o a_o 〈◊〉_d figurative_a speech_n mean_v as_o himself_o do_v open_v it_o 〈◊〉_d christ_n crucify_v and_o so_o he_o call_v christ_n blood_n 1.20_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o gospel_n 1.18_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o persecution_n rise_v of_o it_o 6.12_o persecution_n for_o the_o cross_n and_o against_o they_o who_o rejoice_v in_o circumcision_n and_o the_o law_n he_o say_v that_o he_o rejoice_v not_o but_o in_o the_o cross_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n but_o to_o the_o purpose_n of_o my_o question_n if_o they_o of_o your_o church_n who_o reform_v your_o seruicebooke_n thought_n that_o of_o the_o prayer_n which_o we_o do_v mislike_v they_o may_v abolish_v some_o and_o retain_v other_o what_o if_o among_o the_o feast_n which_o other_o do_v mislike_v they_o who_o reform_v our_o ceremony_n retain_v the_o annunciation_n and_o purification_n of_o the_o virgin_n though_o they_o abolish_v the_o conception_n nativity_n and_o assumption_n chief_o see_v that_o in_o those_o which_o they_o retain_v they_o regard_v the_o honour_n of_o christ_n conceive_v and_o present_v as_o yourselves_o acknowledge_v in_o those_o which_o they_o abolish_v they_o remove_v the_o superstitious_a worship_n of_o a_o creature_n as_o the_o thing_n witness_v for_o both_o they_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v feast_n institute_v to_o a_o saint_n honour_n as_o they_o be_v indeed_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n of_o they_o in_o the_o scripture_n that_o man_n may_v be_v edify_v by_o that_o whereof_o the_o memory_n be_v celebrate_v in_o they_o and_o they_o maintain_v corrupt_a opinion_n touch_v the_o virgin_n with_o derogation_n to_o christ_n honour_n for_o sanctorun_n you_o mean_v by_o the_o feast_n of_o her_o nativity_n and_o conception_n that_o she_o be_v neither_o bear_v nor_o conceive_v in_o sin_n which_o if_o it_o be_v so_o then_o neither_o she_o need_v christ_n to_o be_v 1.47_o her_o saviour_n who_o come_v to_o save_v sinner_n &_o the_o prerogative_n of_o christ_n 2d_o to_o be_v sever_v from_o sinner_n be_v common_a unto_o she_o with_o he_o 1.15_o a_o thing_n so_o absurd_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n which_o show_v that_o 5.12_o all_o have_v sin_v and_o 2.3_o be_v the_o child_n of_o wrath_n by_o nature_n that_o not_o 174._o the_o father_n only_a but_o your_o chief_a 2._o schoolman_n and_o firmi●sun●_n canon_n also_o do_v gainsay_v it_o yea_o the_o feast_n of_o her_o conception_n when_o it_o be_v creep_v in_o be_v therefore_o 7._o reprove_v and_o the_o very_a gloze_n of_o your_o pronuntiandum_fw-la canon-law_n condemn_v sundry_a country_n and_o england_n namely_o for_o keep_v it_o but_o the_o conception_n and_o nativity_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n make_v she_o scarce_o equal_a unto_o christ_n the_o feast_n of_o the_o assumption_n do_v lift_v she_o somewhat_o high_a for_o when_o christ_n be_v take_v up_o into_o heaven_n 1.12_o the_o apostle_n be_v lead_v forth_o a_o litleway_n on_o foot_n to_o see_v it_o and_o witness_v it_o but_o to_o her_o assumption_n they_o be_v bring_v by_o miracle_n in_o cloud_n as_o in_o chariot_n from_o all_o the_o coast_n of_o the_o world_n through_o which_o they_o be_v disperse_v and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o i_o call_v and_o call_v again_o a_o fable_n or_o if_o you_o will_v a_o lie_n as_o 8._o bede_n do_v though_o your_o divine_n of_o rheims_n do_v vouch_v it_o as_o a_o true_a story_n hart._n it_o be_v a_o true_a story_n as_o our_o divine_n of_o rheims_n do_v ●ouch_v it_o though_o as_o he_o report_v it_o who_o venerable_a bede_n do_v touch_v it_o be_v a_o lie_n for_o mariae_fw-la he_o report_v it_o to_o have_v be_v do_v the_o second_o year_n after_o christ_n ascension_n which_o bede_n do_v prove_v it_o can_v not_o be_v but_o our_o divine_n refer_v it_o to_o the_o fifteen_o year_n after_o for_o they_o take_v the_o common_a opinion_n that_o she_o live_v three_o score_n and_o three_o year_n in_o all_o now_o ●_o she_o bring_v forth_o christ_n when_o she_o be_v fifteen_o year_n old_a so_o that_o her_o assumption_n be_v eight_o and_o forty_o year_n after_o christ_n nativity_n and_o this_o agree_v with_o chronico_fw-la eusebius_n who_o say_v that_o some_o do_v write_v it_o be_v revel_v to_o they_o that_o she_o be_v assumpt_v the_o eight_o and_o forteeth_n year_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v fifteen_o year_n after_o his_o ascension_n rainoldes_n then_o you_o grant_v that_o they_o who_o say_v it_o be_v the_o second_o year_n after_o do_v lie_v hart._n i_o grant_v for_o that_o circumstance_n can_v not_o stand_v with_o scripture_n as_o venerable_a bede_n do_v prove_v rainoldes_n then_o a_o 3._o holy_a nun_n do_v lie_v or_o a_o angel_n 80._o or_o a_o devil_n that_o appéer_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o the_o virgin_n and_o tell_v she_o that_o tale_n hart._n what_o if_o some_o be_v deceive_v in_o circumstance_n of_o time_n yet_o the_o story_n notwithstanding_o of_o her_o assumption_n be_v true_a as_o our_o divine_n of_o rheims_n report_v it_o for_o 1.14_o at_o the_o time_n of_o her_o death_n as_o s._n timotheum_n denys_n first_o and_o after_o he_o s._n deiparae_fw-la damascene_fw-la write_v all_o the_o apostle_n then_o disperse_v into_o diverse_a nation_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v miraculous_o bring_v together_o save_v s._n thomas_n who_o come_v the_o three_o day_n after_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o honour_v her_o divine_a departure_n and_o funeral_n as_o the_o say_a s._n denys_n write_v who_o say_v that_o himself_o s._n timothee_n and_o s._n hierotheus_n be_v present_a testify_v also_o of_o his_o own_o hear_n that_o both_o before_o her_o death_n and_o after_o for_o three_o day_n not_o only_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o holy_a man_n present_a but_o the_o angel_n also_o and_o power_n of_o heaven_n do_v sing_v most_o melodious_a hymn_n they_o bury_v her_o sacred_a body_n in_o gethsemani_n but_o for_o s._n thomas_n sake_n who_o desire_v to_o see_v and_o to_o reverence_v it_o they_o open_v the_o sepucher_n the_o three_o day_n and_o find_v it_o void_a of_o the_o holy_a body_n but_o exceed_o fragrant_a they_o return_v assure_o deem_v that_o her_o body_n be_v assumpt_v into_o heaven_n as_o the_o church_n of_o god_n hold_v be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o singular_a privilege_n of_o the_o mother_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o celebrate_v most_o solemn_o the_o day_n of_o her_o assumption_n and_o it_o be_v consonant_n not_o only_o to_o the_o say_a s._n denys_n &_o s._n damascene_fw-la but_o to_o s._n deipara_n athanasius_n also_o who_o avouch_v the_o same_o of_o which_o assumption_n of_o her_o body_n s._n bernard_n also_o write_v five_o notable_a sermon_n extant_a in_o his_o work_n rainoldes_n but_o in_o all_o those_o five_o sermon_n of_o s._n bernard_n there_o